Essence of Navagrahara Mahatmya: Translated and Interpreted by V.D.N.Rao
Essence of Navagrahara Mahatmya: Translated and Interpreted by V.D.N.Rao
Essence of Navagrahara Mahatmya: Translated and Interpreted by V.D.N.Rao
MAHATMYA
Former General Manager, India Trade Promotion Organization, Ministry of Commerce, Govt. of India,
Pragati Maidan, New Delhi, now at Chennai
1
Other Scripts by the same Author:
Essence of Puranas:-MahaBhagavata, Vishnu Purana, Matsya Purana, Varaha Purana, Kurma Purana,
Vamana Purana, Narada Purana, Padma Purana; Shiva Purana, Linga Purana, Skanda Purana,
Markandeya Purana, Devi Bhagavata;Brahma Purana, Brahma Vaivarta Purana, Agni Purana, Bhavishya
Purana, Nilamata Purana; Shri Kamakshi Vilasa
Essence of Virat Parva of Maha Bharata- Essence of Bharat Yatra Smriti -Essence of Brahma Sutras-
Essence of SankhyaParijnaana- Essence of Knowledge of Numbers for students-Essence of
NaradaCharitra; Essence Neeti Chandrika-Essence of Hindu Festivals and Austerities
Essence of Valmiki Baala Ramayana- Essence of Valmiki Ayodhya Ramayana- Essence of Aranya
Ramayana-Essence of Valmiki Kishkindha Ramayana- Essence of Valmiki Sundara Ramayana- Essence
of Valmiki Yuddha Ramayana- Essence of Valmiki Uttara Ramayana- Quitessecence of Valmiki
Ramayana;
Note: All the above Scriptures already were released on www. Kamakoti. Org/news as also on Google by
the respective references except those marked as of *
2
Foreword
When one greets another human saying ‘ how are you’, the head nods invariably and says ‘ Am fine and
how are sir/ madam, youngster’. The truthfully appropriate reply be: ‘Am as I am ought to ornot ,due to
my good-bad fate’. Fate is due to the ‘prabhdha’ as per ‘karma’, as one is exposed to the six enemies of
desire-anger-selfishness- passion-arrogance- intolerance. This is essentially fanned out by Maya Shakti
by the aid of or the intervention of Navagrahas and thus the native individual tends take the dual tasks
of the deeds or misdeeds.Hence, each day-night combines of what one discerns and experiences about is
due to the fall out and far reaching effects of a native-man-woman-child. The close interactions of the
individuls are ably and dexterousnessly fanned out by the Nava Grahasby kaleidoscipic variations
symbolizing endless colors and forms in one’s escape in the times of difficulty and self-doubt,constantly
generating ever changing symmetrical patterns from small pieces of colored glass, and therefore anything
that changes constantly!
Tri- Skandha Jyotisha Shastra or the Jyotisha Shastra, or three Skandhas viz.Ganita (Siddhaanta),
Jaataka, (Hora), and Samhita. In Ganitathere isParikarma of Yoga, Antara, Gunana, Bhaajana, Varga,
Vargamula, Ghana and Ghanamula; ways and means of finding Grahamadhyama and clarity of
positioning, ‘Anuyog’ or the Knowledge of Desha, Disha and Kaalamaanaie. Place, Direction and Time;
Chandra Grahana, Surya Grahana, Udaya (Rise), Astama (Setting), Chhaadhikara (dusk), Chandra
Shrugonnati or Dwiteeya’sChandrodaya and Grahayuti (Graha’s Yoga). In the context of Jataka Skandha,
description is given of JaatiBheda (differences of Jaatis), Graha yoni or the details of Jaati, Rupa and
Guna; Viniyonija (Janmaphala according to human beings), Garbhadaana, Janma, Arishta, Ayurdaaya or
Life span, Dashaakrama or the details of Dashas, Karmaajeeva, AshtakaVarga, Raja Yoga, Naabhsayoga,
Chandra yoga, Pravrajjyaa yoga, Rasisheela, Anishta Yoga, Streejaatakaphala, Mrityuvishaynirnaaya,
Nashta-Janma-Vidhhana etc. As regards Samhityaskandha, details of Grahachara, Varsha Lakshana,
Tithi, Dina, Nakshatra, Yoga, Karana, Muhurtha, UpaGraha, Surya Samkraanti, Grahagochara, Chandra
bala / Taarabala, garbhadana to Upanayana and Vivaha, Yatras, as also tatkaalavrishtigyan or of rainfall
are described .Hence the far-reaching impact by a native on Nava Grahas is truly astounding even to the
cream of the jyotishapractioners as their interpretationstend to be non specific and hazy as of merely
suggestive precautions and guidelines. A Brahma Manasa Putra of the stature of Narada sought to
explain the mortals as to how the Immortal Nava Grahas sought to display to the Beings!
My sincere and truly hearty attempt of this contribution to the everlasting jnaanapravaahaas of my mentor
as a token of dedication.
3
Contents Page
Foreword 3
INTODUCTION 5
SECTION I - PURANAS
Surya ‘Aradhana’ and ‘Agni Homa Vidhi’ - Prayers to Dikpalakas,NavaGrahas, Tri Murtis, 11
Matrikas and Select Deities
Suryanarayana StotraPhala 28
ANNEXTURE
4
INTRODUCTION
Maha Muni Kashyapa married thirteen of Daksha's daughters. Their names were Aditi, Diti, Danu,
Arishta, Surasa, Khasa, Surabhi, Vinata. Tamra, Krodhavasha, Ila, Kadru and Muni.Aditi's sons were the
twelve gods known as the adityas. Their names were Vishnu, Shakra. Aryama, Dhata, Vidhata, Tvashta,
Pusha, Vivasvana, Savita, MitraVaruna, Amsha and Bhaga.Diti's sons were the daityas (demons). They
were named Hiranyaksha and Hiranyakashipu, and amongst their descendants were several other
powerful daityas liked Bali and Banasura. Diti also had a daughter named Simhika who was married to a
danava namedViprachitti. Their offspring's were terrible demons like Vatapi, Namuchi, Ilvala, Maricha
and the Nivatakavachas.The hundred sons of Danu came to be known as danavas. The danavas were thus
cousins to the daityas and also to the adityas. In the danava line were born demons like thePoulamas and
Kalakeyas.Arishta's sons were the Gandharvas (singers of heaven). Surasa gave birth to sarpas , the
snakes. Khasa's children were the Yakshas (demi-gods who were the companions of Kubera, the god of
Wealth) and the Rakshasas. Surabhi's descendants were cows and buffaloes.Vinata had two sons named
Aruna and Garuda. Garuda became the king of the birds. Tamra has six daughters. From these daughters
were born owls, eagles, vultures, crows, water-fowl, horses, camels and donkeys.Krodhavasha had
fourteen thousand children known as nagas (snakes). Ila gave birth to trees, creepers, shrubs and bushes.
Kadru's sons were also known as nagas or snakes. Among the more important of Kadru's sons were
Ananta, Vasuki, Takshaka and Nahusha.Muni gave birth to the Apsaras (dancers of heaven). Diti's
children (daityas) and Aditi's children (Adityas) continually fought amongst themselves. On one
particular occasion, Devas succeeded in killing many of the demons. Thirsting for revenge, Diti began to
pray to her husband, Kashyapa that she be given birth to a son who would kill Indra, the king of the
Devas.Kashyapa found it difficult to refuse his wife outright but gave a condition that she would have to
bear the son in your womb for a hundred years. Diti resolved to do so but Indra came to know about Diti's
resolve and was waiting for an opportunity to save himself. There was an occasion when, tired after her
prayers. Diti went to sleep without first washing her feet. This was an unclean act and it gave Indra the
required opportunity. He adopted a miniscule form and entered Diti's womb. With his weapon vajra, he
sliced up the baby inside the womb into seven parts. The baby naturally began to cry at the pain. Indra
kept on saying, ‘ma ruda’ that is, ‘don't cry.’ But the baby, or rather its seven parts, would not listen.
Indra thereupon sliced up each of the seven parts into seven more sections, so that there were forty-nine
sections in all. When these forty-nine sections were born, they came to be known as the Maruts, from the
words - ma ruda- that Indra had addressed them. Since Diti had not been able to adhere to the conditions
her husband had set, the Maruts did not kill Indra. They instead became Indra's followers or companions,
and were treated as Devas.
SECTION I - PURANAS
Navagrahas: Surya:
JapaakusumasankaashamKaashyapeyammahaadyutimTamorim,
sarvapaapaghnampranatosmiDivaakaram/This is how one prays to Surya Narayana at one’s first darshan
of Sun early morning as Divakara the Day long Deity and the proud son of Kashyapa Muni who shines
day long with the brightness of the hues of Japakusuma flowers demolishing darkness and all kinds of
5
sins. Chandra: Dadhishankhatushaaraabhamksheeraarnavasamudbhavam,
NamaamiSashinamSomamShambhormakutabhushanam/Materialised from the Ocean of Milk and
adorned as Maha Deva’s shining headgear ornament, Chandra Deva is hereby venerated; indeed Chandra
is the Lord of Heath and Medicines as also of Peace and Tranquility.Angaraka: Dharani
garbhasambhutamVidyurkantisamaprabham, Kumaram Shakti hastam tam Mangalam prana -
maamyaham/Being the son of Bhu Devi Mangala Deva is of the flashy brightness of a Lightning and he
too like Lord Subrahmanya the embodiment of Power and Courage ever worthy of worship. Budha:
PriyangukalikaaShyamamrupenaapratimamBudham, Soumyam Soumya gunopetam tam
Budhampranamaamyaham/To you the ever lovable and pleasing faced Budha Deva with placid and cool
temperament, as the blessed son of Chandra Deva, our warm Salutations! Aghora Murti the placid and
tranquil manifestation of the usually angry antithesis of the TamasikaSwarupa of Maha Deva; like Budha
among the Nava Grahas, Maha Deva assumes a form of High Learning and Unparalleled Maturity. Yet,
even of smooth and sauve temperament, He like BudhaGraha, deals with the evil with coolness and
unmistaken precision. This was how like of Aghora qualities eliminated Padmasura who unnecessarily
clashed with Rishis and the virtuous Brahmanas and interfered with their yagnas and acts of virtue as
puffed up by egoism and selfishness.Guru:
kaamchaRisheenamchaGurumkanchanasannibham,BuddhibhutamTrilokesham tam
namaamiBrihaspatim/I salute Brihaspati the Grand Guide and Mentor to Devas and Rishis who is like the
molten gold with which to create Celestial Ornaments of Virtue and Existence; he is the One who leads to
Knowledge and Mental Sharpness with which to lead to Supreme Realisation).Shukra:
Himakundatushaaraabhamdaityaanaamparamamgurum, Sarva shastra
pravaktaaramBhargavampranamaamyaham/Shukra is identified as Parama Shiva himself in the
LingaSwarupa which is omnipresent and all-pervading. Maha Deva represents both the virtuous and
vicious aspects of Srishti and seeks to balance shades of darkness and brightness alike. This Universe as
created by the Supreme is indeed a mix of Satwa-Rajasika-TamoGunas and if there were a Deva Guru,
there ought to be a representation of a Shukra too as the Danava-Daithya-Rakshasa Guru and between the
two, transgression of limits neither way is permitted; after all in the scheme of events, complete perfection
is not possible and to err is human but the playful Almighty ensures that the frontiers of Good and and
Bad are ably guarded with built- in checks and balances!Shanaischara: Neelaanjanasamaabhaasam Ravi
putramYamaagrajamChaayaaMartaandasambhutam tam namaamiShanaishacharam/My salutations to
you Shani Devata! You are of the spendour of blue saffires and as the illustrious son of Surya Deva and
elder brother of Lord Yama Dharma Raja; you are also the son of Chhaya Devi, the alter form of Sanjana
Devi).[ Sanjana Devi the daughter of Vishwakarma was unable to withstand the oppressive heat and
radiance of Surya Deva and could see him excepting wobbly and unsteady eyes. Their union gave birh to
Vaivaswata Manu and Yama Dharma Raja. But the annoyed Surya cursed Sanjana that she would give
birth to a female as a river whose course was uneven and unsteady.Then Sanjana created a Chhaya
Sanjana (her shadow), briefed her and left for his father and since the latter too was upset, assumed the
form of a mare to perform Tapasya to reducethe severity of Surya. Then meanwhile Shanaischara was
born to Chhaya Devi. Surya on knowing the truth assumed the form of a horse and their mating led to the
birth of Revanta. Later on the Sanjana-Chhaya combine gave Surya the blessing of the birth of Ashwini
Kumars, the physicians of Devas].Shani Deva Prayer:
Namahkrishnaayaneelaayashitikanthanibhaayacha, namahkaalaagnirupaayakritaantaayachavainamah/
Namonirmaamsadehaayadeerghasmashrujataayacha,namovishaalanetraayasthularomnechavaipunah/
Namodeerghaayasushkaayakaaladamshtranamostute,
6
namokotaraakshaayadurnireekshaayavainamah/Namoneelamadhukaayaneelotpalanibhaayacha,
namoghoraayaRoudraayabheeshanaayakaraaline/ Namosarvabhakshaayabaleemukhanamostute namaste
Surya putraayaBhaaskaraabhayadaayacha, athodrishtenamastestuSamvatakanamostute/ Rahu:
ArthakaayamMahaVeeramChandradityavimardanamSimhikagarbhasambhutam tam
Rahumpranamaamyaham/ (Rahu Deva! You possess half divine and half serpent physical form. You are
the son of Simhika Devi the daughter of Hiranya kashipu; a valiant and resourceful champion of
KsheeraSagaraMathana leading to the emergence of Amrita and the punisher of Surya and Chandra even!
My sincere salutations to you!)Ketu: Palashapushpasankashamtaarakagrahamastakam,
RoudramRoudratmakamghoram tam Ketumpranamaamyaham/ Iti Vyasa mukodgeetam yah
pathetsusamaahitamDivaavaayadivaaratrouavighnashantirbhavishyati/ (Our salutations to you Ketu
Deva! You are of the brighteness of Palasa flowers placed on your hood which is at the top of Stars and
Grahas. You are indeed frightening, breathtaking and spiteful. Do kindly pardon my shortcomings and be
forgiving! If one recites the entire Navagraha Stotra from Surya Deva onward to all the Nava Grahas
sincerely as Scripted by Veda Vyasa himself day and night then there would never be obstacles in daily
life but would get fulfillment of wishes and contentment).
AdithyayaSomaayaMangalaayaBudhaayacha ,GuruShukraSanirbhyaschaRahaveyKetaveyNamah/Surya,
Chandra, Mangala, Budha, Brihaspati, Shukra, Shani, Rahu and Keta are all expected to be basically
benificient ‘Grahas’ (Planets). Description of their ‘Swarupas’ (Forms) is as follows:
PadmaasanahPadmakarahPadmagarbhasamuddhitah,SaptaashvahSaptarujjuschaDwibhujahsyaatsadaa
Ravih/ (Surya Deva has two hands wearing two lotuses, seated on a lotus flower; his luster is abundant
like that of the outside part of a lotus; Surya Deva is comfortably seated on a magnificent chariot driven
by Seven Horses).
PeetamaalyaambaradharahKarnikaarasamadyutih,KhadgacharmagadaapaanihSimhasthovaradoBudhah
/ (Budha Deva wears yellow flower garland and yellow clothes with body colour too yellowish; he sports
a sword, shield, mace and ‘Vara mudra’ by his four hands and is seated on a lion);
7
Indra neeladutih Shuli varadoGrudhravaahanah, Baanabaanaasanadharahkartavyorkasuthastathaa/
(Shanaischara’s body colour is of ‘Indraneelamani’ / blue diamond; he rides a ‘Grudhra’ / Vulture and
carries bow and arrows, Trishula and Varada Mudra).
DhumraaDwibaahavahSarveyGadinovikrutaananah,GrudhraasanagataanithyamKetavahSyurvarapradaa
h/ (Ketu Deva is of grey colour and of fierce Rupa with two hands showing gadaa and varada mudra
seated always on a vulture)
SarveykireetinahkaaryaaGrahaaLokahitaavahaah,HyaanguleynocchritaahSarveyshatamashtottaramsada
a/ (These are all beneficientGrahas worthy of ornamentation with ‘Kiritas’/head gears and be of hundred
eight inches of Pratimas / Idols).
8
HyaanguleynocchritaahSarveyshatamashtottaramsadaa/ (These are all beneficientGrahas worthy of
ornamentation with ‘Kiritas’/head gears and be of hundred eight inches of Pratimas / Idols).
A ‘Vedi’(platform) is to be prepared with white rice grains with Surya Deva the Center, Mangal in the
South, Brihaspati in the North, North East with Budha, East as Shukra, South East as Chandra, West as
Shani, South West as Rahu, and North West as Ketu. The Adhi Devatas to each of the Planets are as
follows: Shiva for Surya, Parvati for Chandra, Skanda for Mangal, Vishnu for Budha, Brahma for
Brihaspati, Indra for Shukra, Yama for Shanaischara, Kaala Devata forRahu and Chitragupta for Ketu.
The Pratyabhidevatas respectively are Agni, Varuna, Prithvi, Vishnu, Indra, Aindri, Prajapati, Sarpa and
Brahma. Besides, Vinayaka, Durga, Vayu, Aakasha, and AshviniKumars and these are also to be invoked
by individual names. While visualising the various Grahas, one has to visualise Mangala and Surya as of
red colour, Chandra and Shukra as of white colour, Budha and Brihaspati as yellow, Shani and Rahu as
black and Ketu as grey. The Kartha who is to perform the worship the Grahas should try to secure these
colouredVastras (clothing) and flowers as also apply Gandha (Sandalwood paste), offer Dhupa, Dipa and
fruits. By way of Naivedya, Surya has to be offered ‘Anna Payasa’/ kheer; Chandra to be offered material
made of ghee and milk; Mangala to offer cow’s products, to Budha cooked rice and milk, Brihaspati curd
rice, Shukra ghee and cooked rice mix, Shanaischara to be offered ‘Khichidi’ or cooked rice with lentils
and ghee, to Rahu cooked corn grain and to Ketu ‘chitraana’to be offered. On the Northeast side of the
Vedika, a ‘Kalasha’ (vessel) has to be arranged containing ‘Akshatas’ (raw rice grains mixed with
turmeri powder) and curd inside, covered on its top with tender mango leaves, and duly wrapped around
with new cloth, with fruits kept besides. In side the Vessel should be placed ‘PanchaRatnas’ and ‘Pancha
Bhang’ or the roots of Five Trees viz. Peepal, Bargad, Paakad, Gular and Mango. Into this Vessel,
‘Avahana’ or salutary reception/ invocation of waters of Varuna, Ganga and other SacredRivers,
Samudras, Sarovaras should be performed. Then the Chief Priest would pre-collect the Earth of River-
beds, Goshaalasetc and apply to the ‘Karta’/devotee and recite the Mantra saying:
SarveySamudraahSaritahSaraamsijaladaanadaahaayaantuYajamaanasyaduritahkaarakaah/ ( May all
the waters of Samudras, Rivers, Rivulets, Sarovars and cloud / rain waters be prayed to clean up and
purify the Karta. Later on, let ‘havan’ be intiated with ghee, rice, yavas, til /sesame seeds; then
‘samidhas’or the bark / branches of specified trees viz. ‘madaara’, ‘palaasha’, ‘khaira’, ‘chichinda’,
‘peepul’, ‘gular’, ‘duub’ and ‘Kusha’should be used to appropriate ‘Grahas’. To each of the ‘Grahas’,
there should be one hundred offerings (or atleast twenty eight) ‘Ahutis’ should be made along with
honey, ghee and curd; the measurement of ‘Samidhaas’must optimally be of the size of thumb-top to
pointing finger-top made of branches, barks and leaves.ThePurohitas / Priests should address each or the
specified Grahas with the relevant Mantras as designed appropriately and slowly in proper intonation.
Again, the samidhas with ghee are to be offered ten times. There after, each Graha has to be appeased one
by one: Surya should be pleased with the havan as per the Mantra
AkrishnenaRajasaavartamanonivesayannamrutammarthaumchaHiranyayenasavitaarathenaa Devo
yatibhvanaanipasyan; then to Chandra with the Mantra :
ApyaayaswasametuteyViswataassomavrishniyam, Bhavaavaajasyasangadhey; to Mangala by the Mantra
viz. AgnirmurdhvaahKakuppatihPrithivyaaAyam, Apaagumretaamsijinvati/ ; to Budha with the Mantra:
UdbhudhvassajneypratiJaagruheynamishtaapurteysagumsrujedhaamayamcha,
punahkrunnvagsyapitaramyuvaanamanvaataagumsrujethaamayamcha/ to Guru by the Mantra:
Brihaspateyatiyadaryoarhaaddyumadwibhaatikratumajjeneshu,
yaddeedayacchavasartaprabhaatatadasmaasudravinamdehichitram; to Shukra by the Mantra:
9
Sukramteyanyadyajatamteyanyadwishahruupeyahaneedyourivaasi,
Vishwaahimaayaaavasiswadhaavobhadraateypuushanniharaatirastu/; to Shanaischara with the Mantra:
Sham no devirabhheshtaye or alternately with the Mantra : ShamagniragnibhiskarachannastapatuSuryah
sham vaatovaatvarasaaApasridhah; to Rahu, the relevant Mantra is: Om kayanaschitra Aa
BhuvaduteeSadaaVrudhaas –sakhaahkayaashachishthayaavrutaah/; and to Ketu, the relevant Mantra is:
Om Ketumkrunvannaketaveypesomaryaa Aa pesaseySamushadbhirajaayathaah/
After seeking the blessings of the Nava Grahas, other significant Deities are also to be pleased by
performing ‘havans’: To RUDRA DEVA first corresponding to Surya: Aa Vo
RaajaanaMadhvasarasyaRudramor alternatively: Kadrudraayaprachetaseymeedushthamaayatavyasey,
vochemashantamagumhrudey; to DEVI UMA corresponding to Chandra: Apo hi shtha mayo
bhuvahtaanaoorjeydadhaatana, MaheranaayachakshuseyyohvahSivatamorasahtasyabhaajahateha nah/
UsiteeravaMaatarah/ Tasma arangamamavahyasyakshayaayajinvatha, Apo janaayata cha nah/ Om
Bhurbhuvassavahaor alternatively Gowrimimaayasalilaanitakshatyekepadidwipatisaachatushpadi,
AstaapadiNavapadibabhuvushiSahasraakshaaraaparamevyoman; to Swami KARTIKEYA :
SyonaPrithiviBhavaanruksharaanivesaniyacchaanassarmasaprathaah; to Vishnu:
IdamVishnurvichakrameytredhaanidadheypadam, SamoodhamasyapaagumSurey; to BRHAMA:
TaneeneesaanamJagatasthasdhushashpatidhiyamjinwamavasehoomaheyvayam, Pusaanoyatha Veda
SaamaSadvradheyrakshitaasaayuradabdhaswastaye/ OR-
Brahmaajajnaanamprathamampurastaadwisimatassuruchovenaaavah,
SabuddhniyaUpamaaAsyavishthaassataschayonimasatas cha nivah; to INDRA:
IndramvoVisswatassarihavaamahejanebhuahAsmaatamastukevalah; to Lord YAMA:
AyamGowhprusnirakramidasananmaatarampunahpitaramchapriyamtsuvah; to CHITRAGUPTA:
Sachitrachitramchitayamtamasmeychitrakshatrachitratamamvayodhaam/
ChandramrayimpuruveeramBruhantam Chandra chandraabhirgrunuteyyuvaswa/ to AGNI:
AgnimdutamvruneemaheyhotaaramVishvavedasam, Asyayajjassyasukrutum/ to VARUNA: Imam
meyVarunashrudheehavamadya cha
mrudayatwamanassuraachakey,TatwaayaamiBrahmanaavandamaanastadaasaasteyYajamaanohavirbhih/
AhedamaanoVarunehabodhurusagmusma maa naAyuhupramosheeh,
YacchidheteyvishoyathaapradevaVarunaVratammeemaamsidyavidyavi/
YatkinchidamVarunaDaivyejenobhidrohammamaanushyaascharaamasi,
AcchitheeYattaavadharmaayupomimaanastamaadenasoDevaririshah/
Kitavaasoyadrirupurnadeeviyadvaaghasatyamutayannavi,
sarvaataavishyasthitirevadevathatesyaamaVarunapriyaasaha; PRITHVI Mantra: Prithivy –antariksham
etc.; to VISHNU DEVA : SahasraRirshaaPurushahsahasraakshas –sahasrapaat, Sa
bhumimVishwatovrutvaaAtyathishthaddashaangulam/ ; to Devi DURGA: Om Jatavedaseysunamaava
Soma araatiyatonidahaatiVedah, SanahparushadatiDurgaainViswaanaaveyaSindhumdiritaadyaghnih; to
PRAJAPATI: PrajapatenatwadetaanyanyoVishwaajaataaniparitaababhuva,
YatkaamaasteyjuhumastannoAstuvagaggsyamapatayorayeenaam; to VINAYAKA: Om Ganaana –
antwaaGanapatigumhavamaheyKavimKaveenaamupashramastapam,
JyestharaajamBrahmanaamBrahmanaspataAanashrunvannooti -bhisseedasaadhanam/ to VAYU:
TavaVayavrtaspatetwashtarjaamataradbhuta, Aavaasyavrineemahey/ to ASHWINI DEVATAS:
Kraanaashishmuraheenaamhinvanrutasyadeedhitam, Viswaaparipriyaabhuvadadhvitaa/
AaditpratatnassyaretasoJyotihPasyantivaasaramparoyaddhyateyDivaa/ Thus satisfying the Deities
10
above and others with appropriate Mantras with ‘Havans’with ‘Ajyam’, that is ghee plus other suitable
materials, POORNAHUTI should be performed commencing with Muurthaanam Diva etc. including
fruits, flowers, dry fruits, and other suitable materials including vastras, gold etc. as a grand finale with
musical instruments, ‘Veda ghosha’, and parikramas of Yagna Purusha.This would be followed by
‘Abhishka’/ ‘MangalikaSnaan’ to the Karta and his wife along with Mantras saying: May Brahma, Vishnu
and Maheswara purify you; may Vaasudeava, Balaraama, Pradyumna and Aniruddha bring in Victory to
you; may Indra, Agni, Kubera, Yama, Nirruti, Varuna, Pavan, Sehanaaga and Dikpalakaas protect you;
May Kirti, Lakshmi, Dhurti, Medha, Pushti, Shraddha, Kriya, Niti, Buddhi, Lazza /modesty, Shanti,
Tushti, Vapu and Kanti-the wives of Dharma bless you; may the Navagrahas safeguard you; may Deva,
Danava, Gandharva, Yaksha, Naga, Daithya, Rakshasa, Sarpa, and the entire Srishti provide you ‘raksha’.
After the ‘Ashirvaad’/blessings, the chapter of ‘Daanas’to satisfy the Brahmanas would commence.There
are prescribed Danaas as follows: to propitiate Surya Graha, the Daana is a Kapila cow, Chandra a
Shankha, Mangal a bull; to Budha gold, Brihaspati yellow clothes, Shukra a whirs horse, Shanaischara a
black cow, to Rahu the suitable Daana of a Metallic ‘Vastu’/ material and Ketu a goat. ( Matsya Purana)
Surya ‘Aradhana’ and ‘Agni Homa Vidhi’ - Prayers to Dikpalakas, Nava Grahas, Tri Murtis,
Matrikas and Select Deities
Lord Vishnu’s carrier ‘Garuda’ approached Surya Deva’s Charioteer ‘Aruna’ for the best form of
‘Aradhana’ (Worship) to solve ‘Adhi-Vyaadhi’difficulties like diseases, problems posed by Grahas
(Planets), hurdles posed by persons in Power and natural calamities. For instance Garuda was concerned
by a curse since his wings were affected and he could not fly properly. Aruna assured that there could be
no other remedy to tide the difficulty excepting to resort to the worship of Surya Deva, especially by
‘Agni Homa’ or ‘Paavakarchan’which is highly rewarding. Aruna Deva agreed to help Garuda to perform
the Agni Homa by first setting up Agni, preferably in a Temple of Surya, at the ‘Agneyakona’ on a clean
ground purified by cow-dung and invoke Dikpalakas by offering ‘Ahuti’ of Ghee in Agni, by saying OM
BHURBHUVAH SWAHAA and reciting the following Mantras:
AaraktadeharupayaraktakshaayaMahatmaney,
DharaadhaaraayaShaantaayaSahasraakshaShiraayacha/AdhomukhaayaSwetaayaSwaahaa/ (First
Aahuti)UrthwaMukhaayaSwaaha (Second Ahuti)HemavarnaayaDehaayaIraayataGajaayacha,
SahsraakshashareeraayaPurvadishayunmu -khaayacha/
Devaadhipaayachendraayavihastaayashubhaayacha,PurvavadanaayaSwaaha (Third
Ahuti)DeeptaayaVyaktadehaayaJwalaamaalaakulaayacha,
IndraneelaabhadehaayaSarvaarogyakaraachacha/YamaayaDharmaraajaayadakshinaashamukhaayacha,
KrishnaambaradharaayaSwaaha (Fourth Ahuti)NeelajeemutavarnaayaRaktaambaradharaaya cha,
MuktaaphalashareeraayaPingaakshaayaMahaatmaney/
ShuklavastraayaPeetaayaDivyapaashadharaayacha,PaschimaabhimukhaayaSwaha (Fifth Ahuti)Krishna
pingalanethraayaVaayavyaabhimukhaayacha,
NeeladhwajaayaVeeraayatathaChandraayavedhasey/PavanaayaSwaaha (Sixth
Ahuti)GadaahastaayaSuryaayaChitrastrarg -bhusanaaya cha,
MahodayayaShaantaayaSwaahaadhipatayeytatha/UttaraabhimukhayaMahaadevapriyayaSwaahaa
(Seventh Ahuti)SwetaayaSwetavarnaayaChitraakshayaMahaatmaney,
ShaantaayaShaantaRupaayaPinaakavaradhaariney/EshaanaabhimukhaayaSwaaha (Eighth Ahuti) The
seven ‘Ahutis’into Agni in favour of Dikpalakas viz. Agni, Kubera, Indra,Yama, Varuna, Vayu and
11
Eshana having been offered, then Om BhurBhuvahSwaha is recited lakh times and Nava Grahas are
appeased by the following Shanti Mantras as follows:
ShantyarthaSarvalokaanaamtatahShantikamaacharet,
SindhuraasanaRaktaabhoRaktaPadmaabhilochanah/ SahasrakiranoDevahSapaaswarathavaahanah,
GabhastimaaliBhagavaanSarva Deva Namaskrutah/ KarothuteyMahashaantiGrahapeedaanivaaraneem,
Trichakrarathamaarudhaapaamsaaramayamthu yah/Dashaaswavaahano Deva Atreyaschaamrutastavah,
SheetamshuramritaatmaachaKshayavriddhisananvitah/SomahSomyenaBhaavenaGrahapeedaamVyapoha
tu/ PadmaraaganibhoBhaumo Madhu pingalalochanah,
AngaarakognisadrushoGrahapeedaamVyapohatu/Pushparaaganibhodehenaparipingalah,
PeetamaalyaambaroBudhahpeedaanmvyapohatu/ Tapta Gauri SamkaashaSarvaShaastravishaarada,
Sarva Deva GuruViprohaarthavarnavaroMunih/Brihaspatiritikhyata Astra Shaastraparaschah,
ShaantenachetasasopiParenasusamaahitah/ Grahapeedaamvinirjyatyakarotutavashaanikam,
Suryaarchanaparonityamprasaadaadbhaaskarasyatu/ HimakundendruvarnaabhoDaityaDaanavapujitah,
MaheswarastatodheemaanMahaaSauroMahaamatih/
SuryarchanaparonityamShukrahShuklanibhastadaa, Neeti Shastra paronityamgrahapeedaamvyapohatu /
NaanaarupadharovyaktaAvijnaatagatischayah, notpattirjaayateyyasyanodayapeeditirapi/
Ekachulodwichulaschatrisikhahpanchasulakah, Sahasrashirarupastu Chandra Ketu RavihSthitah/
Suryaputrogniputrastu, Brahma Vishnu Shivaatmakah, Aneka shikhirahKetuhsatyehpeedaaVyapohatu/
EtaiGrahaaMahaatmanahSuryaarchana param sadaa,
ShaantamkurvantutyeHrushthaahSadaakaalamHitekshanah/ (With blood-red eyes, thousands of rays,
seated on a Seven Horse drawn chariot, with Sindura-like blood red shine, greeted by all Devatas and
destroyer of Planet-made obstacles, may Surya Deva bestow Great Peace on us! With cool rays and
pleasant vision, Ambrose-like Soul and Sage Atri’s son, may Chandra Deva destroy our Planet-made
hurdles to us; With Pingala coloured eyes akin to Agni, may Bhumi Putra Mangala / Bhoumaya give us
freedom from all our difficulties on account of Planets; may Budha who wears Peeta orYellow clothes
and of peaceful demeanour and mind, do eliminate our Graha-created predicaments to us; May Deva
Guru Brihaspati who is an extraordinary Teacher and Guide to all Devas, do remove all our setbacks and
save us; May Sukracharya the Rakshasa Guru, the Great Source of Guidance and Trouble Shooting to all
negative Shaktis -who is proverbially known for advices that do indeed provide short-term gains of life-
bless us with long duration of peace and happiness; May Shaneswara, the son of Surya Deva, who
assumes various forms with uncertain ways of movements forward and backward as also the Planets of
Rahu and Ketu provide us security from our complications of life and do kindly shield us from all our
impediments.) ( Bhavishya Purana)
Nine Planets
The Planet Of Sun is situated in the outer space moving forward from north to south (Dakshiyahana) and
from south to north again (Uttarayana), emanating tremendous heat and light.The setting of
Dakshinayana to Uttrayana is considered to be of significane as it heralds the six monthly movement
influencing the trend of fortunes.As per the movement of Sun through the ecuador, or beneath it or above
and from Tropic of Capricorn (Makara) to that of Cancer (Karkataka) and back, the zodiac signs are
passed through too in a systematic manner and the duration of day and night too are short, equal or
different.When Sun passes through Aries (Mesha ) and Libra ( Tula), days and night are equal. As Sun
passes through the five Signs headed by Taurus (Vrishabha), the duration of day increases till Cancer and
12
thereafter decreases by half an hour a day each month till Capricorn (Karkataka) in Libra, when day and
night are equal again.When Sun passes through the Five Signs beginning from Vrisckica, the duration of
days decreases compared to nights until Capricon and gradually increases month after month till they are
equal in Aries. As a rule, till Sun travels north the nights become longer and when Sun travels south the
days become longer. Sun travels around Manasottara Mountain in a circle. On the Mountain to the east of
Sumeru is the Devadhani, the residence of Indra, the King of Gods; to the South is Samyami, the Abode
of Yama Raja, God of Death; the West is Nimkolani of Varuna, the God of Rains/Water; and the north is
Vibhavari the abode of Moon. Thrayimaya, named as the Chariot of Sun visits all the abodes of Indra,
Yama, Varuna and Moon traverses all the Residences of these Gods covering the words
‘BhurBhuvaSwaha’at a speed of 27 million miles approx in one muhurta (30 muhurtas a day)!
Interestingly, the Chariot of Sun God is 28 million miles long and seven million miles
wide!Arunadeva, the Charioteer, controls the horses and sits in front of the Sun God, but looks
backward to Sun. It is said that there might be thousands of rays of Sun, but the important ones are only
seven, representing Seven Planets, Viz.Sun, Moon, Mars, Mercury, Jupiter, Venus, and Saturn.[ But, as
per ‘Aditya Hridayam’ Prayer: There are many more rays which are important,viz. Esha
BrahmechaVishnuschaSivahSkandahPrajapathih,MahendroDhanadahKaloYamahSomohyapampathihi,
PitharoVasavassadhyah-yassvinowMarutoManuhVayurVahnihPraja Prana RituKartahPrabhakarah].
Moon travels faster than Sun.The distance between Sun and Moon is 100,000 yojanas( 800,000 miles).
In two lunar fortnights, Moon passes through a period of a Samvatsaraor a year. In two and quarter
days, Moon passes through a month of the Sun, or in one day, it passes through a fortnight of the Sun.
Hence, the divergence of Solar and Lunar calculations and Calendars. As the Moon is waxing, it is a day
for Gods and a night for PitruDevatas.The waxing fortnight gradually diminishes the shine till the Moon-
fall day (Amavasya) and the waning Moon picks up the shine day by day till Moon-rise day( Pournami).
Moon is known as ‘Jeeva’ ( life-provider), or ‘Manomaya’ (mind-alerter) or ‘Annamaya’ ( potency
provider from herbs and plants), ‘Amritamaya’ ( source of life to all) and ‘ Sarvamaya’ ( all pervading).
From Moon to the Group of Stars, the distance is 200,000 yojanas (16 00, 000 miles). Headed by
Abhijit, there are twenty eight Stars revolving on their own axis. Above the Group of Stars is the Planet
of Venus (Sukra) almost of the distance from the Moon to the Group of Stars. It is a benevelont planet,
especially as a provider of good rains and prosperity and moves at the same pace as Sun God. Mercury
(Budha), the son of Moon is situated from Venus ( 16,00,000 miles) or 72,00,000 miles from Earth and
this Planet too is benevolent excepting when not moving along with Sun, thus causing cyclones, excess or
no rainfall and dusty storms. Equidistant from Mercury or 80,80,000 miles above Earth, is the Planet of
Mars (Mangal), which is generally not considered favourable, travelling along with other planets every
three fortnights and creates tensions. The Planet of Jupiter ( Guru) is away from Earth by some
10,400,000 miles-again 16,00,000 miles away from the planet of Mars- is considered generally
benevolent to Brahmins and Universe, unless takes a curved path in conjunction with other planets.
Saturn, which is 12 million miles above Earth is also considered generally unhelpful. Normally, each
planet is 16,00,000 miles apart from another planet , but the distance from Saturn to the Group of ‘Sapta
Rishis’ or the Seven Sages is 8,800,000 miles from Saturn ie.20,800,000 miles from Earth. Indeed, the
Seven Sages are always the great well wishers of the entire Universe.TheSapta Rishis, viz.Marichi,
Angirasa, Atri, Pulsastya, Pulaha, Krathu, and Vasishthaborn in Lord Brahma’s thoughts to help in the act
of Creation.(Reference MahaBharatha; Shanti Parva).The Seven Sage Constellation of the Great Bear
Ursa Major) is indeed the great well wisher of the entire Universe. The Sapta Rishis circambulate around
13
the Pole Star, or Dhruva Tara, which is as good as the Abode of Supreme Lord Himself and is prayed to
by religious mortals and Gods alike.( MahaBhagavata)
In the Jyotisha Shastra, Skanda Muni emphasized three Skandhas viz. Ganita (Siddhaanta), Jaataka,
(Hora), and Samhita. In Ganita there is Parikarma of Yoga, Antara, Gunana, Bhaajana, Varga,
Vargamula, Ghana and Ghanamula; ways and means of finding Grahamadhyama and clarity of
positioning, ‘Anuyog’ or the Knowledge of Desha, Disha and Kaalamaanaie. Place, Direction and Time;
Chandra Grahana, Surya Grahana, Udaya (Rise), Astama (Setting), Chhaadhikara (dusk), Chandra
Shrugonnati or Dwiteeya’sChandrodaya and Grahayuti (Graha’s Yoga). In the context of Jataka Skandha,
description is given of JaatiBheda (differences of Jaatis), Graha yoni or the details of Jaati, Rupa and
Guna; Viniyonija (Janmaphala according to human beings), Garbhadaana, Janma, Arishta, Ayurdaaya or
Life span, Dashaakrama or the details of Dashas, Karmaajeeva, AshtakaVarga, Raja Yoga, Naabhsayoga,
Chandra yoga, Pravrajjyaa yoga, Rasisheela, Anishta Yoga, Streejaatakaphala, Mrityuvishaynirnaaya,
Nashta-Janma-Vidhhana etc. As regards Samhityaskandha, details of Grahachara, Varsha Lakshana,
Tithi, Dina, Nakshatra, Yoga, Karana, Muhurtha, UpaGraha, Surya Samkraanti, Grahagochara, Chandra
bala / Taarabala, garbhadana to Upanayana and Vivaha, Yatras, as also tatkaalavrishtigyan or of rainfall
are described . Among the various aspects mentioned above, some are mentioned briefly as follows:
‘SankhyabodhakSangjnas’ range from Eka (one), Dasha (tens), Shata (hundreds), Sahasra (thousands),
Ayut (ten thousands), Laksha ( lakh), Prayuta (million), Koti (Crore), Arbud (ten crores), Abj (hundred
crores or arab), Kharva (thousand crores or ten arabs), Nikharva (Kharva or one lakh crores), Maha
Padma (one crore crores), Shankah (Neela / ten crore crores), Jaladhi (Ten Neela or hundred crore crores),
Antya (Padma or one thousand crore crores), Paraartha (lakh crore crores) and so on. GanithaSiddhantas
were explained by Sanandana to Narada viz. Pari Karma (Yoga, Antara, Gunana, Varga, Vargamula,
Ghana and Ghana Mula) ranging from addition or deletion of numericals, Gunanaphala, ‘VargaMula’ or
Square Roots, ‘Ghana’ or multiplication of three numbers working out the ‘Ghana Mula’, Concepts of
Hara or Bhajak (Divisor), Amsha or Bhajya (dividend) and Sesha or Remainder; finding out VargaMula,
usage of Vilomavidhi in ascertaining ‘rashi’ (Fund) etc. Referring to KshetraVyavahara, in a ‘Tribhuja’ or
a right angle Triangle, the vertical is called ‘Koti’, ‘bhuja’ is the straight line across and ‘Karna’ is the
(hypotenuse). If Koti is 4 and Bhuja is 3, the square of 4 is 16 and that of 3 is 9, then Karna is the total of
the square roots of 16+9 or 25 and thus the value of Karna is 5. Again, in a VrittaKshetra (Circle), if the
Paridhi (Circumference) is 22 and the Vyas or diameter is 7 and both of these are multiplied and result is
154, its Chaturdhamsha or a quarter ie 38 1/2 is the Khetraphal. In the context of ‘AnnadiRashi’ for
instance, the ‘Rashis’are broadly reckoned as ‘Sthula’, ‘Madhyama’ and ‘Sukshma’ and their Parithis
could be calculated as Shashthamsa, Navamamsha, Dasama -amsha and Ekadasasetc.on the basis of the
quantity of land, the availability of water bodies with the details of length, width and depth; presence of
stones and metallic content etc. Sanandana Maharshi then explained to Narada about the calculations of
‘Kaala, Desha and Dishaviz.Time, Place and Directions. The total duration of Four ‘Yugas’ put together
was stated to be thirty three lakh twenty thousand years, of which four times of Dashamsha was the
duration of Satya Yuga viz. sixteen lakh twenty eight thousand. In the Dasamsha, one third of the duration
was of twelve lakh ninty six thousand years in Treta Yuga; Dwapara Yuga was of the duration of eight
lakh sixty four thousand years, while Kali Yuga is only four lakh thirty thousand years. There are seventy
one Chatur Yugas in one Manvantara. In Brahma’s one day, there are fourteen Manvantaras and another
fourteen Manvantaras are counted in his night additionally. In one Yuga, the Planets of Surya, Budha and
14
Shukra (Sun, Mercury and Venus respectively) in the Eastern side, take a ‘Bhagan’ (Bhaga is Surya) as
many as 4,320,000; Mangala, Shani and Brihaspati (Mars, Saturn and Jupiter also make such Bhaganas.
Chandra (Moon) makes 577, 53,336 Bhaganas in a Yuga likewise. There are 157,79,17,828 Surya’s one
full day-night comencing from Sundays in a Maha Yuga measured in ‘Soura mana’, while the Moon day-
nights from Mondays measured in ‘Chandra mana’ total up to 160,30,00,080 in a MahaYuga; this is to
establish the difference in the Solar and Lunar Calendar day-nights viz.2,50,822 days. ‘AdhikaMaasa’ is
15, 93,336 in a Maha Yuga, while ‘Thikshaya’ is 250, 82,252. Looked in terms of Solar Months, the
number is 518, 40,000 where as Lunar Months are 534, 33,336- all in Maha Yuga. The methodologies of
calculating were offered in respect of the current Yuga about GrahaGyana, Bhumi Paridhi Pramaana;
positioning and speed of Grahas (Planets), GrahaVakreekarana or of negative influences and KaalaGyana.
‘Panchanga S adhana’ or Tithi, Vaara, Nakshatra, Karana and Yoga determine the results of good or bad
nature to a person.There are Nakshatra Dashas like VimshottariDashaa, AshtottariDasha, Kala chakra
Dasha, Yogini Dasha, etc. Also threre are RashiDashas like Narayana Dasha, Ati Karaka KendriyaDasha,
Trikona Desha, as also Ayur Desha. In the context of determiningKaranams or one half of Tithi or then
time required for the angular distance between Moon and Sun; there are eleven Karanas viz four fixed
ones called Kimshugna, Shakuni, Chatushpad and Naagava, besides repetitive Karanas viz. Bhaava,
Kualava, Titula, Garaja, Vanaja, and Vishti. Karanam is active at the time of Sun Rise.Another important
input relates to Yoga the angular distance along the eliptive view of any object on the sky (measured
from Mesha or the start of Aries) called the longitude of an object when the longitudes of Sun and Moon
are added; the result produced a value ranging from Zero degree to 360 degree and that is called Yogam,
which is also active in the mornings.There are 27 Yogas like Visha Kamba, Preeti, Ayushman,
Sowbhagya, Shobhana, Atiganda, Sukumara, Dhriti, Shula, Ganda, Vriddhi etc. Ayanamsha Sadhana:
The word ‘Ayana’ denotes movement and ‘Amsha’ a component. Ananamshabhaaga or portion is the
amount of ‘precession’ or the orientation of the rotation axis of a rotating body. In astrology, this is a
longitudinal difference between ‘Sayana’ (Tropical) and Nirayana (Sidereal) zodiacs. Ayanamsha is
defined as the angle between the Sidereal ecliptic longitude of a celestial body and its tropical ecliptic
longitude. According to Surya Siddhanta, Ananamsa rises from 0 degree to +27 degrees during 1800
years and decreases to 0 degree to -27 degree thus oscillating within a range of plus/minus 27 instead of
cyclically moving in a circle. In astronomy, precession refers to several slow changes in an Astronomical
body’s rotational or orbital parameters especially in Earth’s precession of Equinoxes.Periodical changes
of Earth’s orbital parameters combined with the precession of equinoxes and the inclinatin of Earth’s axis
on its orbit is a part of Astronomy.Grahana Sadhana: Chandra Grahana (Lunar Eclipse) takes place on a
Pournami and Surya Grahana (Solar Eclipse) on Amavasya and these are called Parvas. As ‘Grahas’
rotate on their own axis and perform Pradakshina (circumambulation) around Bhumi, that path is known
as the ‘Kasksha’or region of that Graha. Prithvi is far away from the Sun path and Chandra is nearer and
is in between Surya and Prithvi. In the direction in which Surya travels, the shadow of Prithvi falls in the
opposite direction of Surya’s path and the length of the rotating shadow is equal to that distance. As Prithi
is round, the shadow of Chandra is also rounding, moving six ‘Rashis’ away from Surya. Chandra
rotatating on its own axis moves along with Surya on the Southern Rekha (Line) and that time is known
as DarshantaKaalaie at the junction of the termination of Amavasya and the beginning of Shukla
Pratipada; similarly, when Surya reaches six Rashis ahead that time is Pournima. Thus Surya is shadowed
by Chandra and Chandra is shadowed by the shadow of Prithvi; that is why during Surya Grahana, Surya
is known as Chhadya or the shadow maker and Chandra is Chhadak; again, in Chandra Grahana, Chandra
is Chhadya, Earth’s shadow or Bhubha is Chhadak or Grahana Karta. The ‘Vilambana’or the delay of
15
time between the ‘Chhadya’and ‘Chhedak’ is known as ‘Chhanna’ or ‘graas’. Thus when Chandra is fully
invisible, then the Lunar Eclipse is stated to be complete or ‘Sarvagraas’. If Chandra grahana is a ‘Khanda
Grahana’ or a partial eclipse, then Prithvi’s shadow falls on Chandra to that extent.
Surya-Chandra Grahanas
(Solar Lunar Eclipses): When Chandra travels while in rotation between Surya and Prithvi and lies in the
Southern direction under the level of Surya, that day when Sun rays fall on the top portion of Chandra,
that night is called as Amavasya since Chandra’s lower portion is invisible on Earth. It is on that
Amavasya when Chandra comes in between Prithvi and Surya and Surya’s ‘bimba’ disappears at a point
of time, that particular Amavasya is stated to the time of Surya Grahana (Solar Eclipse). As in the case of
Lunar Eclipse, there might be Sarvagraas or Khanda Graas of Solar Eclipse too. On Amavasya, Chandra’s
Chhaya falls towards Prithvi and in that ChhayaBhubhubhagh falls and Surya bimba disappears; the
extent of disappearence denotes the full or partial Solar Eclipse. Maharshi Sanandana explained to Narada
Muni the methodology of calculating the exact time and duration of the Eclipses as also the general
impact on various other Grahas. The belief in Puranas that Rahu was responsible for the Eclipses as he
was annoyed at the successful attempts made by Surya and Chandra to dismember him, although
succeeded to secure ‘Amrit’ and as a result accomplished the status of Grahas, was not unfound; it is
believed that Rahu was dismembered from one entity into two as Rahu and Ketu and Lord Brahma set up
Rahu in the shadow of Chandra and Ketu in the shadow of Prithvi and appointed them as Grahas
(Planets); while Rahu and Ketu were positioned as the shadows nearby to Surya and Chandra respectively
and were thus stated to be responsible for the Eclipses. Dik Sadhana: If a concrete platform is made and a
‘Shankha’is erected at a central point, mark a ‘Vrittha’ (circle) with twelve equi-distant portions from the
centre drawn to the periphery, keep marking twelve ‘dots’after every two hours, observing Sun’s direction
from the Sun-Rise point and the Sun-Fall, it is not difficult locate the Dishas/ UpaDishas (directions),
indicating the twelve Rashis, [viz.Mesha (Aries), represented by Ram, Fire and Mars; Vrishabha,
represented by Bull, Earth, and Venus; Mithuna (Gemini), represented by a Couple, Air and Mercury;
Karkataka (Cancer), represented by Crab, Water and Moon; Simha (Leo) reprented by Lion, Fire and Sun;
Kanya (Virgo) represented by Virgin, Earth and Mercury;Tula (Libra) represented by a Balance, Air and
Venus; Vrischika (Scorpio) represented by Water and Mars; Dhanus (Saggitarius) represented by a Bow,
Fire and Jupiter; Makara (Capricon) represented by Alligator, Earth and Saturn; Kumbha (Aquarius)
represented by Pot, Air and Saturn and Meena (Pisces) represented by Fish, Water and Jupiter]. The
Dashas and UpaDashas respectively are North East (Ishana) representing Varuna or Water full of
beneficial Energy; East ( Poorva) ruled by Indra indicating for Authority and Contentment; South East
(Agneya) represented by Agni / Fire and Energy; Dakshina (South) ruled by Yama and standing for
Dharma and Death; South West (Niruti) ruled by Nocturnal Deity known for Sleep, Fame and Income;
West (Paschim) is ruled by Varuna for Water/ Rain and ‘Karma’/ fate; North West (Vayavya) ruled by
Vayu Deva standing for intellect, business and name; North (Kubera) known for prosperity and Career;
Brahma is the Centre for Power and Creativity.[Narada Purana]
‘JaatakaSkandha’
It is stated that the Rashis from ‘Mesha’ constitute the limbs of ‘Kaala Purusha’ in the order of head, face,
hands, heart, stomach, thighs, ‘Vasti’ or urinary bladder, linga, knees, leg calves and two feet. Mangal,
Shukra, Budha, Chandra, Surya, Budha, Shukra, Mangal, Guru Shani, and Guru are the Ruling Deities of
16
the Rashis respectively as follows: Mesha-Vrisha-Mithun-Karka-Simha-Kanya-Tula-Vrischik-Dhanu-
Makar-Kumbh-Meena Mangal-Venus-Budha-Chand-Surya-Budha-Shukra-Mangal- Guru- Shani- Shani-
Guru . In the context of specific Rashi, Shad Vargas are calculated in terms of Hora (from Sun Rise to
Sun set), Drekshana ( division of one third of a Rashi or a Varga), Navamamsha, Dwadashaamsha, and
Trimshamsha (as each Rashi comprises thirty Amshas.), of which fifteen Amshas has one hora, ten
Amshas make a drekshana, three and one third Amshas make a Navamamsha; (in other words, in each
Raashi, there are nine Navamshas), two and half Amshas make one Dwadashamsha thus making twelve
Dwadashamshas in a Rashi.EachAmsha is called a Trimshamsha. In malefic Rashis, first five Amshas are
dominated by Mangal, the next five Amshas by Shani, the next eight Amshas by Brihaspati, the further
seven Amshas by Budha and the last five Amshas by Shukra. In respect of ‘Sama’ (Even) Rashis, the
reverse order is applicable viz. first five by Shukra, seven by Budha, then eight by Brihaspati, five by
Shani, and finally from Mangala. Jataka cakra of Horas indicates that during the first half or the fifteen
Amshas, MeshaRasi is governed by Ravi, Vrisha by Shukra, Mithun by Ravi, Karkataka by Chandra,
Simha by Ravi, Kanya by Chandra, Tula by Ravi, Vrischik by Chandra, Dhanu by Ravi, Makara by
Chandra, Kumbha by Ravi and Meena by Chandra; where as during the second half of 15 to 30 Amshas
in the Hora Chakra, Ravi is dominant among Vrisha, Karka, Kanya, Vrischik, Makar and Meena and
Chanrda in the rest of the Raashis viz. Mesha, Mithuna, Simha, Tula, Dhanu and Kumbha. In respect of
Triteeyaamsha, viz. Dreshkaana the dominating Grahas in the first part of 1-10 Amshas are as follows:
Mangala in Mesha and Vrischik, Shukra in Vrisha and Tula , Budha in Mithun and Kanya, Chandra in
Karka, Surya in Tula, and Guru in nine and Twelve; during the period of eleven to twenty Amshasot the
middle phase, Surya is dominating in Mesha; Budha in Vrisha and Kumbha; Shukra in Mithuna and
Makara, Mangal in Karka and Dhanu,Guru in Simha and Vrischik, Shani in Kanya and Tula; and Chandra
in Meena; and finally during the Third and final Dreshkanaie from 21 to 30 Anshas, Guru is prominent in
Mesha and Karka, Shani in Vrisha and Mithuna, Mangal in Simha and Meena, Shukra in Kanya and
Kumbha, Budha in Tula and Makara, Chandra in Vrischik, and Surya in Dhanu. Calculations in respect of
NavaamshaJnaana are exacting, since nine Amsha / Kalaas are involved from 3/20, 6/40, 10/0, 13/20,
16/40, 20/0, 23/20, 26/40 and 30/0; during these respective AmshaKalaas, the juxta-positions of Raashi /
Grihas are Mesha vs. Mangala (1), Shukra (2), Budha (3), Chandra(4), Surya (5), Budha (6), Shukra (7)
Mangala (8) and Guru (9); Vrisha vs. Shani (10), Shani (11), Guru (12), Mangala (1), Shukra (2), Budha
(3), Chandra (4), Ravi (5) and Budha (6);MithunaVs. Shukra (7), Mangal (8), Guru (9), Shani (10), Shani
(11), Guru (12), Mangal(1), Shukra (2) and Budha (3); Karka vs. Chandra (4), Ravi (5), Budha (6),
Shukra (7), Mangal (8), Guru (9), Shani (10), Shani (11), Guru (12); Simha vs. Mangal (1), Shukra (2),
Budha (3), Chandra (4), Surya(5), Budha (6), Shukra (7), Mangala (8) and Guru (9); Kanya vs. Shani
(10), Shani (11) Guru(12), Mangal(1), Shukra (2), Budha (3), Chandra (4), Ravi (5) and Budha (6); Tula
vs. Shukra (7), Mangal (8), Guru (9); Shani (10), Shani (11), Guru (12), Mangala (1), Shukra (2), and
Budha (3); Vrischikavs.Chandra (4), Ravi (5), Budha (6), Shukra (7), Mangala (8), Guru (9), Shani (10),
Shani (11) and Guru (12); Dhanu vs. Mangal (1), Shukra (2), Budha (3), Chandra (4), Surya (5), Budha
(6),Shukra (7), Mangala (8), and Guru (9); Makara vs. Shani (10), Shani (11), Guru (12), Mangala (1),
Shukra (2), Budha (3), Chandra (4), Ravi (5), and Budha (6); Kumbha vs. Shukra (7), Mangal (8), Guru
(9), Shani (10), Shani (11), Guru (12) , Mangala (1), Shukra (2), and Budha (3); and Meena vs. Chandra
(4), Ravi (5), Budha (6), Shukra (7), Mangala (8), Guru (9), Shani (10), Shani (11) and Guru (12).Similar
calculations may be done in respect of Dwadashaamsha Chakra has to be calculated in the juxtaposition
of Raashis and Grahaas with the difference that instead Navamshi or nine Amshas, the reference is for
Twelve Anshaas in the slots of 2, 5, 7, 10, 12, 15, 17, 20, 22, 25, 27 and 30. This is how Rashi of a native,
17
hora, Dreshkaan, Navamaamsha, Dwadashaamsha and Trimshaamsha are worked out and the process is
defined as Shadvarga.The Six of the Twelve Raashis viz. vrisha, Mesha, Dhanu, Karka, Mithun and
Makara are known as RaatriSanjnaatak as the are active in the nights, mainly; they are also known as
‘Prushtodaya’ since they are from the hind side of the body, excepting in respect of Mithuna. The rest of
the Rashis are Dina Sanjnas and are active during the day-time (Meena Rashi is however Ubahyodaya)
and the rest are of Seershodaya category. As regards the aspect of beneficient and malefic nature, Mesha,
Mithuna, Simha, Tula, Dhanu and Kumbha are of Krura (Cruel) nature and the other Grahas are of
Soumya / Soft nature. The AngaSthhanaa or the predominant body-part of Mesha is Mastak (head),
Vrisha is Mukha/ Face, Mithuna is shoulder, KarkaHridaya, Simha(Stomach), Kanya (kamara / waist)),
Tula ( bladder), Vrischik (Linga), Dhanu (Uru / thighs), Makara ( Jaanu/ knees), Kumbha (jangha / shin )
and Meena is feet.As regards the Sthira ( Stable) or Chara (mobile) nature of the Rashis, Mesha, Karaka,
Tula and Makara are of ‘chara’ nature while Vrisha, Simha,Vrischika and Kumbha are stable Rashis, but
Mithuna, Kanya, Dhanu, and Meena are of both Swabhavas. Surya is in Ucchha (exalted position) in
Mesha with ten Amshas, Chandra is exalted in Vrisha with 3 Ashas, Mangala in Makara with 28 Amshas,
Budha in Kanya with 15 Amshas, Guru in Karka with 5 Amshas, Shukra in Meena with 27 Amshas and
Shani in Tula with 20 Amshas in Paramoccha or highly exalted position. As regards the direction of the
Rashis, Mesha, Simha and Dhanu are in the East; Vrisha, Kanya and Makara in South; Mithuna, Tula and
Kumbha westward and Karka, and Vrischik and Meena northward. In Chara position, East Navamaamsha
is Vargotthama; the fifth or MadhyamaNavamaamsha is the best among the Sthira or stable positions; and
in dwisvabhava the last Navamaamsha is the best of Vargottamaas. Talking of Lagnas, these are of twelve
‘Bhaavaas’. The MulaTrikonas or Corner Triangles are stated to be Surya’s Simha, Chandra’s Vrisha,
Mangala’s Mesha, Budha’sKanya, Guru’s Dhanu, Shukra’sTula and Shani’s Kumbha. Chaturtha and
Ashtabhavas are called Chaturasras or squares. The Navama and Panchama are called Trikonas.
Dwadasha, Asthama and Shashtha are called Trikas; LaghnaChaturtha, Saptama and Dashama are
Kendras (Center). The ‘dwipadas’(bipeds), Jalacharaas (water borne), Keeta (worms) and Pashu or
animals are powerful in Kendra; in other words, Dwipadas in Lagna, Jalachara in Chaturtha, Keeta in
Seventh and Pashu in Daswa or tenth become powerful. From Kendra, the positions at 2, 5, 8 and 11 are
known as ‘Panaphar’; the subsequent positions at 3, 6, 9 and 12 are named ‘Aapovilma’. Mesha is
‘RaktaVarna’or of blood-red colour, VrishaRashiscolour is Sweta (white), Mithuna has the green colour
of a Parrot, Karka’scolour is rose like, Simha is Dhumra or grey, KanyaRaashi’scolour is Wheatish,
Tula’s colour is Chitra or mixed, Vrischika has black colour, Dhanu has yellow colour, Makara is of
Pinga /orange colour, Kumbha has Babhru or blue-like colour and Meena has ‘Swaccha’ or transparent
varna. Surya Deva is known as Kaalapurusha’sAtma or Soul, Chandra is the Manas or heart, Mangal is
Parakrama or Valour, Budha is Vani or the power of Speech, Guru is Jnaana (Knowledge) and Happiness,
Shukra is desire and Shani is sorrow. Surya and Chandra are the epitomes of a King, Mangal is Senapati
or Head of Defence Forces, Budha is Raja Kumar or the Prince, Brihaspati and Shukra are the Ministers
and Shanaischar is ‘Doota’ (Servant). Having given the colours of Raashis, the Varnas or colours of
Grahas are given as Surya of Tamra (copper), Chandra of Shukla or white, Mangal of Rakta or blood,
Budha of green colour, Brihaspati of ‘peeta’ or yellow, Shukra is of Chitra and Shaneshwara is of black
colour. Agni, Jala, Kartikeya, Hari, Indra, Indrani and Brahma are the Deities of Nava Grahas. Surya,
Shukra, Mangal, Rahu, Shani, Chandra, Budha and Brihaspati are the Rulers of Purva, Agneya, Dakshina,
Nairuti, Paschima, Vayavya, Uttara and Ishana respectively. Ksheena or diluted Chandra, Surya, Mangal,
and Shani are ‘Paapa- grahas’ (malevolent); Budha and Shani are Napumsaka (eunuchs); Shukra and
Chandra are Stree (effiminate) Grahas, and the rest of Grahas viz. Ravi, Mangala and Guru are Purushas.
18
Mangal, Budha, Guru, Shukra and Shani are the counter-part Masters of the Tatwas of Agni, Bhumi,
Aakaash, Jala, and Vaayu. Shukra and Guru are from the Brahmana Varna; Bhauma and Ravi are
Kshatrias, Chandra is the Master of Vaishva Varna and Budha is the Head of Sudra Varnas. Shani is the
Head of Antyajas (the least important of Varnas) and Rahu is the Master of Mlecchas. Chandra, Surya
and Brihaspati are of SathvaGuna; Budha and Shukra of RajoGuna, and Mangal and Shani are of
Tamoguna. Surya is the Master of Devatas, Chandra of Jala, Mangala of Agni, Budha is the Master of
Kreeda Vihara or Sports, Brihaspati of Bhumi, Shukra of Wealth, Shanaischara of Shayana or Sleep and
Rahu the Master of ‘Usar’ or Chemeleons. Surya and the following Grahas viz. Chandra, Mangal, Budha,
Guru, Shukra and Shani wear the respective Vastras (Clothes) viz. coarse, new, burnt, wet, medium,
strong and worn ones. The respective Grahas from Surya as above are the ‘Dhatus’of copper, diamonds,
gold, glass, silver, pearls and iron.The beneficiaries of the dhatus are bones in respect of Surya; shronita
(egg- developer of Virility) from ‘Manis’or Jewels in respect of Chandra; ‘Majja or bone-marrow from
Gold in the case of Mangala; twacha or skin from glass in respect of Budha, ‘Vasaa’ or fat from silver in
the case of Guru; ‘Veerya’ from pearls in the case of Shukra and ‘snaayu’ or sinews from loha or
metal/iron as from Shani. Similarly Shani, Shukra, Mangala, Chandra, Budha and Guru are the Masters of
the Seasons of Shishira, Vasanta, Greeshma, Varsha, Sharad and Hemanta. Grahamaana: One ‘Ayana’ or
six months,‘Muhurta’or two ‘Ghadis’, ‘Ahoratra’, ‘Ritu’ or two ‘maasaas’ or months, ‘maasa’, ‘Paksha’
or fortnight and ‘Varsha’ or a Year-these are the Kaalamaanas of Grahas commencing from Surya. These
are also the ‘Rasaas’or tastes of the Grahas viz. Katu /Mircha (Surya); Lavana (Salt) (Chandra), Tikta or
bitter (Mangal); ‘Mishra’ or mixed tastes (Budha); ‘Mathura’or sweet (Guru); ‘Amla’or sour (Shukra) and
‘Kashaya’or herbal decoction (Shani). SwaabhaavikaMaitri of Grahas (Natural Compatibility): To
Surya, Mitras or important friends are Chandra, Mangal and Guru; Budha is a normal friend but Shukra
and Shani are enemies; to Chandra, significant friends are Budha and Surya, neutral friends are Mangala,
Guru, Shukra and Shani but has no Shatrus at all; Mangala’s very good friends are Chandra, Surya and
Guru, his normal friends are Shukra and Shani and enemy is Budha; to Budha, very good friends are
Shukra and Surya, normal friends are Mangala, Guru and Shani but Chandra is shatru; to Guru, Surya,
Mangala and Chandra are very good friends, Shani is a neutral friend but Budha and Shukra are enemies;
To Shukragood friends are Budha and Shani, neutrals or Mangala and Guru but Surya and Chandra are
enemies; Shani’s very good friends are Shukra and Budha, Guru is neutral tohim but enemies are Surya,
Chandra and Mangala. MataantaraMaitri of Grahas(Compromised Compatibility): Surya is a friend of
Brihaspati in normalcy, so is Chandra with Guru and Budha, Mangal with Shukra and Budha, Budha with
all the Grahas excepting Surya, Guru is friendly with all excepting Mangala, Shukra is friendly ordinarily
excepting Chandra and Ravi, and Shani is friendly with others excepting Mangala, Chandra and Ravi.
TatkaalikaMaitri among Grahas: (Temporary Compatibility): Depending on the time/ positioning of
Grahas in second and twelfth Houses; or third and eleventh Houses; or fourth and tenth Houses, even
natural enemies might become friendly on temporary basis. Suppose Surya is in the First House and
Budha, Shukra and Mangal are in second, third and fourth Houses respectively, then Surya would become
temporary friends and Chandra, Guru and Shani become Shatrus.Similarly, Chandra becomes friendly
with Shani, Guru, Shukra and Mangala if they happen to be in the third, fourth, eleventh and tenth Houses
and others viz. Surya and Budha become Shatrus. There would be temporary friendships and enimities
among other Grahas as well. Nakshatra Phala(Star-wise birth results): Readings as per Nakshatra (Star)-
wise birth of various human beings were narrated by Sanandana Maharshi to Narada Muni as follows:
Those born in Ashwini are handsome and fond of wearing ornaments. Bharani-born are capable to
perform and speak truthfully. Krittika-born tends to eatless, steady-minded, and conversational but have
19
soft corner for other women. Rohini born are wealthy, Mrigashitaites are luxurious; Ardra-born violent,
stubborn and criminal-minded; Punarvasuborn are even-minded, and well behaved but suffer bad health;
Persons born in PushyaNakshatra are imaginative like Poets and are happy-go-lucky. Those persons who
are born in Asleshaare rude, obstinate, ungrateful, low-minded and uncouth. Magha born are rich, devoted
and happy. If born in PurvaPhalguni, the persons are charitable, adjustable, sociable and
conversationalists. Born of Uttara Phalguniare wealthy and comfortable. Hasta born are shameless,
mean-minded and crooks. Persons born in Chitra are well dressed, beautiful and charming. Swati born are
virtuous, moralistic, kind hearted and charitable. Vishakhaites are greedy, deceptive, cunning and harsh.
Born of Anuradha, the persons are fond of travel and non-resident. Jyeshtha born are principled and
contented. Persons born in Mula Nakshatra are wealthy, happy and helpful. If born of Purvashadha
andUttarashadha, the persons concerned are happy- go- lucky and hearty /disciplined and virtuous
respectively. Shravanitesare rich, happy and famous; while born of Dhanishta, the persons concerned are
donors, wealthy and courageous. A person born of Shatabhisha, the persons win over opponents but are
susceptible of bad practices. Born of Purvabhadra, the persons concerned are heavily prone to feminine
influence and rich; while Uttrabhadraitesare independent, assertive, speech-makers, attractive and joyful.
Finally, those born in Revati are energetic, enterprising, rich and pure-hearted. Meshaadi Chandra
RaashiJanmaPhala: Those born in MeshaRaashi are passionate, enterprising and grateful; VrishaRaasi:
Charming, charity-minded and tolerant; MithunRaashai: Comfort-loving and diplomatic; KarkaRaashi:
Controlled by opposite sex and short statured; SimhaRaashi: Egoistic, enterprising, stable-minded and
comfort-oriented; KanyaRaashi: Soft-natured, virtuous and well-meaning; Tula Raashi: Learned, broad-
minded and wealthy; VrischikaRaashi: LokaPujya, unhealthy and injury-prone; DhanuRaashi: Poets,
Architects, Artistic and wealthy; Makara Raashi: Unenthusiastic to perform, wasteful, vagabond but
attractive; Kumbha Raashi: Desirous of possesing ‘Para Stree’ and ‘Para Dhan’; and Meena Raashi:
Artistic, dreamy and easy-loving. Suryaadu-Raashi- Phala:IfSurya is in MeshaRaashi, the ‘Jaataka’
would be famed; in VrishaRaashi the person would be a woman hater; in Mithuna the person is rich;
Karka stands for angry nature; Simha for ignorance; Kanya for a Poet; Tila for an Artist; Vrischik for
dhanavaan; Dhanu for LokaPujyata; Makar for a miser; Kumbha for poverty, and Meena is unhappiness.
If Mangal is in Simha the Jataka is of poverty; in Karka, the person is rich; in Swaraashiie. Mesha /
Vrischika the Jaataka is Bhramanasheela or fond of travel; in BudhaRaashi (Kanya-Mithun), the person is
full of gratitude; in Guru (Dhanu- Meena) fame and name; in Shukra (Vrisha-Tula) desire for opposite
sex; Makara for good progeny and prosperity; and in Kumbha an unhappy, wicked and illusive nature. If
Budhais in Surya’sSimhaRaasi, the native is a woman hater; Chandra Raashi in Karaka, the person would
be a disliker of relatives; in Mangala raashi (MeshaVrischika) suffers poverty ; in Budharaashi (Mithun -
Kanya), the person becomes intelligent and rich; the native in Guru Raashi (Dhanu/Meena) achieves
fame; in ShukraRaashi (Vrisha-Tula) the person concerned the native gets rich by wife and children; and
in Shani Raashi (Makara –Kumbha) goes in debt. If Guru is in Simha, the native becomes Senapati; in
Karka becomes rich by wife and children; in Mangal (Mesha-Vrischik) he/she would be wealthy and
forgiving; in Budha (Mithuna-Kanya) the native would by wealthy by ‘astraas’ etc. ; in Own Raashi
(Dhanu-Meena), becomes District-Head; in Shukra’sRaashi (Vrisha-Tula) the nbative becomes rich and
happy; and in Shani (Makar-Kumbha), the person becomes the Poor and in Kumbha rich. If Shukrais in
Simha attains prosperity by wife; in Karka becomes arrogant and unhappy; in Mangal (Mesha-Vrichak)
receives hatred from relations; in Budha (Mithun-Karka) becomes rich and sinless; in Guru (Dhanu-
Meena) becomes scholarly; and in own (Vrisha- Tula) becomes rich and forgiving; and finally in Shani
(Makara-Kumbhja) gets disgraced by woman or opposite sex. If Shani is in Simha, the native becomes
20
poor because of children and lack of money; in Mangal (Mesha-Vrischika), the native becomes friendless
and poor; in Budha (Mithun-Kanya) the person turns out to be a PradhaanRakshak /Chief of Security; in
Guru Raashi (Dhanu-Meena) the person becomes rich and happy due to life-partner and offspring; in
Shukra (Vrisha-Tula) becomes a King anf finally in the own Raashi (Makara-Kumbha), the native would
be the Territorial Head. Graha Drishti on Chandra: Maharshi Sanandana further explained to Narada
Muni the ‘drishthiphal’or the visionary outcome of ‘Nava Grahas’on Chandra positioned in various
‘Raashis’; for instance, the drishti of Grahas stationed in MeshaStitha Chandra results in varying results
like Mangala drishti yields ‘Bhupa’(King); Budhadrishti gives ‘Jna’orPandita, Guru’s drishti gives
‘Guni’; Shukradrishti provides ‘ChoraSwabhava’ or the characteristic of a thief and Shani’s drishti creates
‘Aswa’ or poverty. On Vrishascha Chandra, the Grahadrishti yields Nirdhana from Mangala,
ChoraSwabhava from Budha, and Raja Swabhava from Guru, ‘Pandita’ Swabhava from Shukra; and
Preshya / BhrityaSwabhava or of a servant from Shani. (Surya drishti is ‘anukta’ or unknown and may be
considered as the drishti of Shani). The ‘drishtiphalas’are to be reckoned accordingly as per the above
illustrations. Similarly, the ‘drishti’of various Grahas on Chandra in terms of ‘Navaamsha’ and the
resultant ‘Phalas’might also be identified.Maharshi Sanandana described various other aspects of Jyotisha
to Narada Muni ranging from the fixation of muhurtas like agricultural operations (Seed-spreadings,
tilling, crop-cuttings), Roga-VimuktiSnaanas or bathings to terminate illnesses, ‘Nrityaarambha’ or
maiden dances (good Nakshatras being Uttara Phalguni, Uttaraashaadha, Uttara Bhadrapada, Anuraadha,
Jeyshtha, Dhanishta, Shatabhisha, Pushya, Hasta and Revati); ‘Yatra’ or travel Nakshatras viz. Ashwini,
Krittika, Mrigashira, Pushya, Moola, Chitra, Shravana, the Three Uttaras, Purvaphalguni, Magha,
Vishaka and Dhanishta (‘varjita’ or avoidable nakshatras are Rohini, Jeyshtha, Punarvasu, Swati, Revati,
Hasta, Anuradha, Purvabhadra, Bharani and Aslesha) etc. Muhurthas for Garbhadaana Samskara,
Pumsavana / Seemantotrayana, Jaata Karma/Naama karma, Anna Praasana, Chookaakarana,
SaamaanyaKshura Karma, Upanayana or Gayatri Mantropaasana, Vivahas (weddings), VadhuPravesha or
maiden entry of brides in the homes of husbands, Deva Pratishtha, GrihaNirmaana, Vaastu vishaya,
GrihaPravesha or Entry of new residence, commencement of Deva Karyas like ‘Vrataararambha’. (
Narada Purana)
Meru mountain is in the North of the Dvipas and Varshas and hence when a person finds Sun rise, that
direction is known as East since Meru exists to the left of the Sun Existence of Sun ( Surya) is eternal but
one feels that He sets or rises since what is Sunrise to one is Sunset for another in the exactly opposite
direction.Within 15 ghatikas or six hours, Sun travels 22.70 million Yojanas (one Yojana is 8 miles or 13
km) which is the distance from Indrapuri to Yamapuri. Sun’s chariot travels at the speed of 14.2 million
yojanas a Muhurtha ( There are 30 muhurtas in a day). The Chariot driven by Arunadeva has seven horses
named after the ‘Chhandas’ viz. Gayatri, Usnih, Anushtubh, Jagati, Brihati, Trishtubh and Pankti and
Aruna Deva sits facing the Sun God. On the Chariot sit sixty five thousand Valakhilya Rishis of thumb
size chanting Veda Mantras, besides innumerable Sages, Apsaras, and Devatas. Sun’s chariot has 28
million miles long and 7 million miles wide. It takes two months for Sun to cover two constellations (
Aries, Taurus, Gemini, Cancer, Leo, Virgo, Libra, Scorpio, Capricon, Aquarius, and Pisces) of Zodiac
covering each of the six seasons in a year, viz. VasantaRitu, GreeshmaRitu, Varsha Ritu, SaradRitu,
Hemantha Ritu and SisiraRitu. The path of Sun at the end of the first half of a year changes upwards
called ‘Uttharayana’ and when Sun moves downwards is ‘Dakshinayana’. When Sun with Earth and
Heaven takes a complete circuit of Zodiac, it then takes a full ‘Vatsara’. A Vatsara denotes the movement
21
of Sun by three kinds of speed viz. Seeghra, Manda and Samanya or fast, slow and normal in five time
frames viz. Samvatsara, Parivatsara, Idavatsara, Anuvatsara and Idvatasara. Moon ( Chandra) is situated
one lakh yojanas higher than the Sun and is regulated by Sun’s movements and speed as also cooresponds
to the Dark and Bright phases of ‘Krishna Paksha’ and ‘Sukla Paksha’ or the Dark and Bright movements
of Sun. Moon is the Lord of Nights and is symbolic of medicinal plants, good health and fulfiller of
desires during the Sukla Paksha of a month ending Pournami, human desires, ‘Sankalspas,’and good
health corrsponding to Manonmaya and Annamaya; while ‘Sarvomaya’ provides happiness from Devas
and nourishment to ‘PitruDevatas’.‘Venus’ (Sukra) is two lakh yojanas above Moon and traverses along
with or ahead or sometimes behind Sun and is invariably beneficient to all including humans and denotes
success, prosperity, good rains and health. Mercury or Bhudha, the son of Moon, is again situated two
lakh yojanas above the planet of Venus. His velocity too assumes the three stages of Seeghra, Manda and
Samanya. When this planet is away from Sun, there would be bad times of natural calamities, like
‘Ativata’ ( huuicanes, sand cum hail storms etc), ‘Abhrapata’(meterioc falls from the skies) or ‘Akala’ (
drought). Mars or ‘Mangal’, the son of ‘Pridhvi’ or Earth is two lakh yojanas above Mercury and is
generally considered as a manvolent Planet travelling three fortnights in each Rasi when its motion is not
retrograde, creating tension, mischief and ill-health. Jupiter (Guru) too is two lakh yojanas above Mars,
who passes through each Rasi once a year and is beneficientwhen his motion is not retograde. Saturn (
Sani) son of Sun again above two lakhs yojanas above Jupiter and is invarialbly a malefic planet, creating
unrest, confusion, and miseries, taking thirty months to pass through each Rasi. Some eleven lakh
yojanas higher than Saturn is Sapta Rishi Mandala (the Great Bear) which is kind and just to those to
practise a virtuous living. Dhruva Mandala ( The Pole Star) is thirteen lakh yojanas above the Sapta
Rishi Mandala where Bhagavan Vishnu’s Holy Feet rest and is the permanent residence of Dhruva (the
Illustrious son of King Uttanapada, who performed unprecedented Tapasya since he as a child was
spurned by his step mother and also by the consent of his father and was guided by Narada Muni to please
Narayana Himself and carved a prize position as a Pole Star on the skies far above the Sapta Rishi
Mandala). Maha Vishnu Himself made the exclusive dispensation for Dhruva by making him the pivot of
all the planets, Stars and innumerable luminary bodies as the Pole Star! It is believed that the ‘Zodiac’ or
the Jyotish Chakra firmly holds on all the heavenly bodies and the central position of the axis is in the
Dhruva Mandala. ‘Shisumara’, literally meaning the killer of a Child has the body of a dolphin held
integrated by the Union of Prakriti Shakti and Purusha. The contents of the Sisumara Chakra or the
dolphin like boy includes the Pole Star at the tail, which was also witnessed at the tail position by Lord
Brahma, being prayed by Indra, Agni and Dharma. The waist of the dolfin like body of Sisumara contains
the Sapta Rishi Mandala. As the coil of the dolphin like body rests on the right side, the fourteen
Uttarayana Nakshatras from Abhijit to Punarvasu are found on the left side and fourteen Dakshinayana
Stars from Pushya to Uttarashadha on the right side. Sisumira’s back is the Holy Ganges named Ajaviti.
Punarvasu and Pushya on the loins on either side. Ardra and Aslesha form the right and left feet; Abijit
and Uttarashadda form the right and left nostrils; Sravana and Purvashaddha right and left eyes;
Dhanishtha and Moola right and left ears; Magha and the remaining Dakshinayana stars form left side
bones; Mrigasira and the rest the right side bones of shoulderes. Agasti forms the upper jaw and Yama the
lower jaw, Mars the face, Saturn the organ of generation; Brihaspati the shoulder humps; Sun the breast,
Narayana the earth and jala, Moon the mind, AswiniKumars the nipples, Mercury the Pana and Apana
airs; Rahu the neck; and Kuber all over the body. Thus the Sisumara is the composite body of Devas and
Bhagavan Himself. One should meditate it in the morning, noon and evening. Rahu Mandala is situated
an Ayuta ( ten thousand) yojanas or eighty thousand miles under the Sun. Keeping the ancient enmity
22
between Rahu on one hand and Sun and Moon on the other, periodical Solar and Lunar eclipses do take
place as visible to human beings on the Skies as Rahu takes vengence since Sun and Moon complained to
Maha Vishnu in the disguise of Mohini Devi at the time of distribution of ‘Amrit’ the everliving elixir,
since Rahu a Danava swapped the Devas queue by deceipt and Vishnu administered His Sudarsana
Discus to and cut Rahu’s head who was revived as he had already consumed the elixir and was made one
of the Planets. Underneath the Rahu Mandala are the Lokas of Siddhas, Vidyadharas and Charamas
admeasuring an AyutaYojanas.Yakshas, Rakshasas, Piscachas, Pretas and Bhutas reside on the
Antariksha where fierce winds blow and clouds appear too. Thereunder is Earth measuring hundred
yojanas or 80,000 miles. Below the Earth , there are the sub terranian places, called the Bilva Svarga
comprising seven Regions known as Atala, Vitala, Sutala, Talatala, Mahatala, Rasatala and Patala, where
Daityas, Danavas, and Snakes live in. Atala is known for physical lust as Bala the Danava Maya yawned
thus emerging Pumschali ( unchaste women), Svairini or adultress and Kamini or woman of lust and these
with the help of Hatakarasa ( love potion) enjoy eternal lust. Vitala is known for Hataka or gold jewellery
and Sutala is the region of Bali the Danava King who conquered Indra and Devas but Vamana suppressed
him and Bali created Bilva Swarga. Talatala is the land of magic powers. Mahatala is the land of fierce
multi headed snakes like Kaliya and Taksha and Rasatala is the region of Daityas, Danavas and Asuras,
the progeny of Kadru and Patala is the place of Vasuki, the Chief of powerful and vengeful snakes and
deep down underneath is Bhagavan Anantha Deva Himself! Sun, Planets, Dhruva, Sisumara, Skies and
Sub-Terrain: Meru mountain is in the North of the Dvipas and Varshas and hence when a person finds
Sun rise, that direction is known as East since Meru exists to the left of the Sun. Existence of Sun (
Surya) is eternal but one feels that He sets or rises since what is Sunrise to oneis Sunset for another in the
exactly opposite direction.Within 15 ghatikas or six hours, Sun travels 22.70 million Yojanas (one Yojana
is 8 miles or 13 km) which is the distance from Indrapuri to Yamapuri. Sun’s chariot travels at the speed
of 14.2 million yojanas a Muhurtha ( There are 30 muhurtas in a day). The Chariot driven by Arunadeva
has seven horses named after the ‘Chhandas’ viz. Gayatri, Usnih, Anushtubh, Jagati, Brihati, Trishtubh
and Pankti and Aruna Deva sits facing the Sun God. On the Chariot sit sixty five thousand Valakhilya
Rishis of thumb size chanting Veda Mantras, besides innumerable Sages, Apsaras, and Devatas. Sun’s
chariot has 28 million miles long and 7 million miles wide. It takes two months for Sun to cover two
constellations ( Aries, Taurus, Gemini, Cancer, Leo, Virgo, Libra, Scorpio, Capricon, Aquarius, and
Pisces) of Zodiac covering each of the six seasons in a year, viz. VasantaRitu, GreeshmaRitu, Varsha
Ritu, SaradRitu, Hemantha Ritu and SisiraRitu. The path of Sun at the end of the first half of a year
changes upwards called ‘Uttharayana’ and when Sun moves downwards is ‘Dakshinayana’. When Sun
with Earth and Heaven takes a complete circuit of Zodiac, it then takes a full ‘Vatsara’. A Vatsara denotes
the movement of Sun by three kinds of speed viz. Seeghra, Manda and Samanya or fast, slow and normal
in five time frames viz. Samvatsara, Parivatsara, Idavatsara, Anuvatsara an Idvatasara. Moon ( Chandra)
is situated one lakh yojanas higher than the Sun and is regulated by Sun’s movements and speed as also
cooresponds to the Dark and Bright phases of ‘Krishna Paksha’ and ‘Sukla Paksha’ or the Dark and
Bright movements of Sun. Moon is the Lord of Nights and is symbolic of medicinal plants, good health
and fulfiller of desires during the Sukla Paksha of a month ending Pournami, human desires,
‘Sankalspas,’and good health corrsponding to Manonmaya and Annamaya; while ‘Sarvomaya’ provides
happiness from Devas and nourishment to ‘PitruDevatas’.‘Venus’ (Sukra) is two lakh yojanas above
Moon and traverses along with or ahead or sometimes behind Sun and is invariably beneficient to all
including humans and denotes success, prosperity, good rains and health. Mercury or Bhudha, the son of
Moon, is again situated two lakh yojanas above the planet of Venus. His velocity too assumes the three
23
stages of Seeghra, Manda and Samanya. When this planet is away from Sun, there would be bad times of
natural calamities, like ‘Ativata’ ( huuricanes, sand cum hail storms etc), ‘Abhrapata’(meterioc falls from
the skies) or ‘Akala’ ( drought). Mars or ‘Mangal’, the son of ‘Pridhvi’ or Earth is two lakh yojanas
above Mercury and is generally considered as a manvolent Planet travelling three fortnights in each Rasi
when its motion is not retrograde, creating tension, mischief and ill-health. Jupiter ( Guru) too is two
lakh yojanas above Mars, who passes through each Rasi once a year and is beneficent when his motion is
not retograde. Saturn ( Sani) son of Sun again above two lakhs yojanas above Jupiter and is invarialbly a
malefic planet, creating unrest, confusion, and miseries, taking thirty months to pass through each Rasi.
Some eleven lakh yojanas higher than Saturn is Sapta Rishi Mandala ( the Great Bear) who is kind and
just to those to practise a virtuous living. Dhruva Mandala ( The Pole Star) is thirteen lakh yojanas
above the Sapta Rishi Mandala where Bhagavan Vishnu’s Holy Feet rest and is the permanent residence
of Dhruva (the Illustrious son of King Uttanapada, who performed unprecedented Tapasya since he as a
child was spurned by his step mother and also by the consent of his father and was guided by Narada
Muni to please Narayana Himself and carved a prize position as a Pole Star on the skies far above the
Sapta Rishi Mandala). Maha Vishnu Himself made the exclusive dispensation for Dhruva by making him
the pivot of all the planets, Stars and innumerable luminary bodies as the Pole Star! It is believed that the
‘Zodiac’ or the JyotishChkra firmly holds on all the heavenly bodies and the central position of the axis is
in the Dhruva Mandala. ‘Shisumara’, literally meaning the killer of a Child has the body of a dolphin
held integrated by the Union of Prakriti Shakti and Purusha. The contents of the Sisumara Chakra or the
dolphin like body includes the Pole Star at the tail, which was also witnessed at the tail position by Lord
Brahma, being prayed by Indra, Agni and Dharma. The waist of the dolfin like body of Sisumara contains
the Sapta Rishi Mandala. As the coil of the dolphin like body rests on the right side, the fourteen
Uttarayana Nakshatras from Abhijit to Punarvasu are found on the left side and fourteen Dakshinayana
Stars from Pushya to Uttarashadha on the right side. Sisumira’s back is the Holy Ganges named Ajaviti.
Punarvasu and Pushya on the loins on either side. Ardra and Aslesha form the right and left feet; Abijit
and Uttarashadda form the right and left nostrils; Sravana and Purvashaddha right and left eyes;
Dhanishtha and Moola right and left ears; Magha and the remaining Dakshinayana stars form left side
bones; Mrigasira and the rest the right side bones of shoulderes. Agasti forms the upper jaw and Yama the
lower jaw, Mars the face, Saturn the organ of generation; Brihaspati the shoulder humps; Sun the breast,
Narayana the heart, Moon the mind, AswiniKumars the nipples, Mercury the Pana and Apana airs; Rahu
the neck; and Kuber all over the body. Thus the Sisumara is the composite body of Devas and Bhagavan
Himself. One hould meditate it in the morning, noon and evening. Rahu Mandala is situated an Ayuta (
ten thousand) yojanas or eighty thousand miles under the Sun. Keeping the ancient enmity between Rahu
on one hand and Sun and Moon on the other, periodical Solar and Lunar eclipses do take place as visible
to human beings on the Skies as Rahu takes vengence since Sun and Moon complained to Maha Vishnu
in the disguise of Mohini Devi at the time of distribution of ‘Amrit’ the everliving elixir, since Rahu a
Danava swapped the Devas queue by deceipt and Vishnu administered His Sudarsana Discus to and cut
Rahu’s head who was revived as he had already consumed the elixir and was made one of the Planets.
Underneath the Rahu Mandala are the Lokas of Siddhas, Vidyadharas and Charamas admeasuring an
AyutaYojanas.Yakshas, Rakshasas, Piscachas, Pretas and Bhutas reside on the Antariksha where fierce
winds blow and clouds appear too. Thereunder is Earth measuring hundred yojanas or 80,000 miles.
Below the Earth , there are the sub terranian places, called the Bilva Svarga comprising seven Regions
known as Atala, Vitala, Sutala, Talatala, Mahatala, Rasatala and Patala, where Daityas, Danavas, and
Snakes live in. Atala is known for physical lust as Bala the Danava Maya yawned thus emerging
24
Pumschali ( unchaste women), Svairini or adultress and Kamini or woman of lust and these with the help
of Hatakarasa ( love potion) enjoy eternal lust. Vitala is known for Hataka or gold jewellery and Sutala is
the region of Bali the Danava King who conquered Indra and Devas but Vamana suppressed him and Bali
created Bilva Swarga. Talatala is the land of magic powers. Mahatala is the land of fierce multi headed
snakes like Kaliya and Taksha and Rasatala is the region of Daityas, Danavas and Asuras, the progeny of
Kadru and Patala is the place of Vasuki, the Chief of powerful and vengeful snakes and deep down
underneath is Bhagavan Anantha Deva Himself! ( Devi Bhagavata)
Sage Kashyap and Devi Aditi gave birth to Vaivaswan and the latter had three wives viz. Sanjna, Raajni
and Prabha. Raajni was blessed with Raivat and Prabha with Prabhat. Sanjna the daughter of
Vishwakarma begot Vaivaswat Manu as also Yama and Yamuna. Since Sanjna could not bear the heat
and illumination of Surya deva (Vaivaswan), she created from her body another woman exactly like her
named Devi Chhaya and demanded her to serve her husband and also bring up her children as her own.
Chhaya gave birth to Saavarna Manu and in course of time to Shaneswara, besides two daughters Tapati
and Vishti. The famed Yama went on tapasya on the banks of the holy Pushkarini and being pleased with
the devotion, Lord Brahma conferred the status of Lokapalaka as also the boons of becoming the Ruler of
Pitruloka and the Authority of Deciding Dharma and Adharma in the World. Chhaya Putra Shaneswara
also performed Tapasya and got the boon of becoming a Planet. Yamuna and Tapati were converted as
Holy Rivers. Vishti had a frightening Form and was in the position of Kala Swarupa. Vaiwasvata Manu
had ten sons, viz. Ila, Ikshvaaku, Kushanaabha, Arishta, Dhrushta, Narishyant, Karusha,
MahabaliSharyati, Prushaghna and Naabhaga. By dint of relentless Tapasya, Vaivaswata secured the
boon from Brahma of becoming the Supreme Administrator of Prithvi of high virtue and Fortune and thus
he became the First Manu Ever! Ila also became ambitious and wandered several places and by mistake
entered the ‘Sharavana’ Garden, little knowing that who ever entered the Sharavana would instantly turn
into a woman as per the instructions of Parameswara where Shiva Deva was alone with Devi Parvati.
Even outside the Sharavana, Ila as a woman was attracted to Budha, the son of Chandra (Moon). Ila’s
brother Ikshvaku was worried about the disappearance of Ila and having realised the fact that any male
entering the Sharavana would be converted as a female and that Ila also would have been converted like
wise. Ihshvaku prayed to Shiva and as directed Ihshvaku announced Ashvamedha Yagna so that Ila as a
female could be identified since the brave Ila would be definitely attracted to the Ashvamedha Yagna and
the challenge of holding the horse. Indeed the Plan of Ikshvaku worked well and Ila was identified as the
‘wife’ of Budha, the son of Chandra. The female Ila became a Kimpurush for six months and as a woman
for six months as per the boon of Shiva. As a Kimpurush, Ila also known as Sudyumna gave birth to three
sons Utkal, Gaya and Haritashwa and they became the Kings of Utkal (Orissa), Gaya, and Haritashwa or
Kuru. Ikshvaku became the King of Madhyadesha who begot hundred sons half of whom ruled the
northern side of Meru and the others the Southern side. Kakustha was the eldest son of Ikshvaku and in
that lineage was born Yuvanashwa and his great grandson was the famed Kuvalashva who killed the
notorious demon Dundhumara. It was in this lineage that the illustrious Mandhata who was the
Chakravarti of the Universe.In his lineage were the famous Purukutsa, Muchukunda, Harischandra, Dilip,
Bhagiratha who brought the Sacred Ganga to Earth, Nabhaga, Ambarisha, Raghu, Dasaratha and the
Incarnation of Lord Vishnu, the Epic Hero Shri Rama who killed Ravanasura and his able brothers
Bharata, Lakshmana and Shatrughna; the Surya Vamsha of the clan of Ikshvaku was further extended by
Kusha and Lava.
25
Once Brahma instructed Maharshi Atri to contibute in the task of Creation; to invoke extraordinary Shakti
for the purpose of Creation, Atri performed ‘Anutar’Tapasya which would have been performed by
anyone in the past. From the Maharshi’s eyes trickled drops of tears that illuminated the whole World.
Those tears got collected in his stomach and were materialised in his Garbha; the Maharshi discarded the
Garbha and Brahma gave a unique form of a Youthful Male; He named the Youth as Chandra Deva.
Rishis, Devatas, Gandharvas and Apsaras eulogised Chandra as Brahma declared him as the Master of
Aoushadhis (Medicines) and the Leader of Brahmanas. In course of time, Daksha Prajapati dedicated
twenty seven daughters of his as Chandra’s wives.Chandra worshipped for long in favour of Shri
Narayana and requested him to enable to perform Rajasuya Yagna in Indraloka, that all the Deities should
appear in person and accept the ‘Yagnabhagas’ and that Maha Shiva should please ensure the success of
the Function. Shri Narayana accepted the proposal and attended it in person. Bhagavan Srihari himself
became the Brayhma of the Yagna, Atri attended as the ‘Hota’, Sage Bhrigu was the ‘Adhvaryu’ and
Brahma the ‘Udgaata’. The Yagna was memorably successful and Chandra turned out to be very
prosperous and the Chief of SaptaLokas.Chandra gave birth to Budha and Brahma bestowed a planetary
position among the Nava Grahas like Chandra himself. Budha and Ila produced DharmatmaPururava who
performed over hundred Ashwamedha Yagnas and was blessed as Lokeswara and the Conqueror of
SaptaDwipas; he defeated several demons like Keshi and became the Emperor of the Universe. Apsara
Urvashi got attracted to him and begot eight sons, viz. Ayu, Dhrudhayu, Vashyayu, Vritthimaan, Vasu,
Divijat and Subahu. Ayu’s sons were Nahush, Vriddha Sharma, Raji, Dambha and Vipaapma.Nahush had
seven sons viz. Yayi, Yayati, Samyati, Udbhava, Para, Viyati and Vidyasaati.Yati took to vanaprastha
even early in life. Yayati had two wives viz. Sharmishtha the daughter of DanavarajVrishaparva and
Devayani the daughter of Shukracharya. Devayani begot Yadu and Turvasu, while Sharmishtha had
Druyhu, Anu and Puru. The bright stars of YaduVamsa were Bhagavan Shri Krishna and Balaram who
had considerably reduced the heavy weights of evil on Earth and assisted by Pandavas destroyed
KauravaVamsa whose misfortunes were tied up the the Four Villians of Maha Bharata viz. the notorius
Duryodhana, Dussashana, Karna and Shakuni. It was among the descendants of Yayati that the famed
Kaartaveeryarjuna the thousand handed, noble and valiant Chakravarti who ruled SaptaDwipas for eighty
five thousand years; the great desciple of Mahatma Dattatreya and an epitome of Dharma; the memorable
figure who humbled the Epic VillianRavanasura, but finally destroyed by the Vishnu Avatar
Parasurama.In their previous births, Devaki and Vasudeva did relentless Tapasya to beget Lord Vishnu;
Devaki was Aditi and Vasudeva was Sage Kashyap. Similarly, Nandagopal was Vasu Drona and Yashoda
was Dhara and their Tapasya too bore fruit as they were eye witnesses of Kishana’s childhood escapades.
Of the sixteen thousand and eight wives of Krishna, the foremost Rukmini gave birth to Pradyumna,
Charudeshna, Sucharu, Charubhadra, Charuka and Charuhasa. Satyabhama’s sons were Bhanu,
Bheemaratha, Kshana, Rohita etc. Jambavati putra was Samba; Mitravandi had three sons; likewise
Krishna had thousands of sons! Whoever reads or hears the Legend of Krishna Deva, especially his birth,
Leelas and Promotion of Dharma would certainly get rid of sins of the present and the
past.KrishnasyaJanmaabhyudayam yah keertiyatinityashaha,
KrishnotivanaronithyamSarvapaapaaihpramuchyatey/
Surya RathaVarnana: King Shataanika asked Sumantu Muni to describe the details of the chariot of Surya
Deva.The same question was also asked by Rudra Bhagavan to Brahma Deva. Brahma replied that the
golden chariot had one chakra, three naabhis, one nemi, and had a total area of ten thousand yojanas of
width and breadth while Aruna Deva was seated as the charioteer. A set of high speed seven horses of
26
chhandaswarupa named Gayatri,Trishthup, Jagati, Anushthup, Pankti, Brihati, and Ushnik and seven
divisions of a ‘samvatsara’ viz. rithus, months, pakshas, weeks, days, nights, and muhurtas - comprising
kshana-akshadanda-nimesha-anukarsha-lava-ishaadanda- are equipped with the wheel whose banner is
knownis Dharma. There are two divisions of this Kaala chakra or the Time cycle viz. uttarayana and
dakshinaayana each with eighty mandalas. Deva Rishis, Gandharvas, Apsaras, Sarpas, Rakshasaas and
the like travel along with the chariot with their changes on bi monthly basis. Also accompanying the ratha
are Dhata, Aryama, Pulastya, Pulaha, Tumburu, Narada, Shankha, Vaasuki, Ritusthala, Punjikasthala,
Rathakutsna, Rathouja, Rahshohetu and Prahetu in the Chaitra-Vaishakha months; Mitra, Varuna, Atri,
Vashishtha, Takshaka, Ananta, Menaka, Sahajanya, Haaha, Hoohu, Rathasvana, Rathachitra, Vadha and
Pourusheya during JyeshthaAshaadha months; Indra, Viviawaan, Angeera, Bhrigu, Ilaaparna, Shankha -
paala, Pramlocha, Dunduka, Bhanu, Durdura, and Sarpa- Vyaghras during Shravana-Bhadrapada months;
Parjanya, Pusha, Bharadwaaja, Goutama, Chitrasena, Suruchi,Vishvaachi, Ghritaachi, Airaavata,
Dhananjaya, Senajita, Susenaetc in Ashviyuja and Kartika; Amshubhaga,Kashyapa, Kratu, Mahapadma,
Karkotaka, Chitrangada, Urnaayu, Urvashi, Sahajanya, Prasena, Sushena, Nakula and Gaja during
Maargasheersha and Pousha; Pusha, Vishnu, Yamadagni, Vishwamitra, Kambala, Ashvatera,
DhritarashtraSucharcha, Tilottama, Rambha, Ritajit, Satyajit, Brahma and Upeta during Maagha-
Phalguna months.
Then Brahma Deva addressing Rudra Deva further said that in order to protect and provide security to
urya Deva, Indra appointed Maathar, Vayu named Naagavaahan, Garuda gave Taakshya, and so on as the
security staff. The Security equipment for the personal safety of Surya Kaala Deva provided
Dandaayudha, Vasus too powerful ayudhas and Agni, Yama gave Pingala,Varuna gave danda,
Kuberapaasha hasta, Vishnu and AshviniKumars provided KaalaansUpakala, Nara Narayana provided
Vaarkshya and Prathana, Vishwadevas provided for Surya’s protecction for ashtadishas gave kshaara,
dwaara, ghishana, krishna, vairaja, shankhapaala, parjanya and jaya weapons. Seven Maatrikas appointed
seven Marud Devas; Chaturvedas provided Omkara and Vashatkaara; Lord Shiva named Vinayaka and
on half of Naaga Devas were appointed Shesha and Vasuki. Thus there is full representation of all Devas
to provide personal security to Bhaskara Deva. In the Surya Mandali, Devatas and Rishis were praising
the magnificence of Bhaskara, Gandhavas were singing, Apsarasasweredancing along the chariot, Sarpas
were decorating the chariot, and six thousand Valakhilya Rishis of very short stature were hanging on the
four peripheries of the chariot. Swayambhu Manu was going ahead of the chariot, Bharga on the right
side, Kubera on the Southern side, Varuna on the northern side, Yamaraja ahead and Vithihotra behind.
Well behind in the background, Prithvi is situated while in the middle portion the Sky. The dazzle of the
chariot is golden, the dhwaja or the banner is of Dharma, the flags are Riddhi and Vriddhis, while the
flagpoles are the places of stay of Lakshmi and Parvati. MenakaParvata is rhechhantradanda and
himalayas the chhatrarupa, always present with Surya Deva. All these Devatas derive bala-tapa-teja-yoga-
tatwa from Surya Deva’s radiance and these very Devatas transmit the same to other lokas; in fact hey
spread illumination, rains, strength, and auspiciousness and fight against evil influences, insusecurity,
sinful-mindedness all over, especially to humanity. That is the reason why the various celestial and high
dharmic swarupas throng around the Eka Chakra for mutual give and take boons. Chandra too tends to
hover around Surya Bhagavan since the latter’s kiranas get radiated in the Shuka Paksha and offset the
loss of chandra’s glory in Krishna Paksha. Bhagavan Surya while tasting the ‘rasa’ or the juices of Prithvi
provides ‘vrishti’/ rainfall which enables ample food and herbal medicines as that not only provides
contentment to humanity but also to Pitru Devatas. Surya Narayana by His own ‘eka chakra’ enjoys the
27
comfortable seat of his chariot and takes daily ‘bhramana’ or circumambulation as a joy ride across
Prithvi of SaptaDwipas and SaptaSamudras with neither tiresomeness nor hunger and this routine has
been following till Pralaya kaala; with a break for a while He observes the bhramana there fter too. In one
human year, Bhaskara Deva is accustomed to render this kind of daily travel three hundred sixty five
times in a man-year defying fatigue and boredom.The short statured Baalakhilya Rishis get thoroughly
mesmorised with this celestial feat of Bhaskara and wonder how having commenced his daily travel from
Samyaminipuri at Suryodaya, Sukhanaama Nagari my midnight and VibhaaNaamaPuri by Suryaasta.
When mid day occurs at Samyamini, Vibha occurs at midnight and Suryasta at Amaravati. This is how,
Surya Deva performs a full pradakshina from his rise to fall at the east to the west; in one time unit of
muhurta, Surya’s ‘ parinaam’ covers thirty percent of bhumi. His chariot’s speed per nimesha is 2202
yojanas per nimesha! [yojana 13 km as per Bhagavata Puranas but Surya Siddhanta states 9 km per
yojana] Indra worships Surya at the Sunrise, Varuna worships at noon and Soma at midnight. Vishnu-
Shiva-Rudra-Brahma- Agni-Vayu-Nirruti-Ishana and so on too worship Bhagavan Surya.
Surya’s features as per Rithus or Seasons: Brahma explained further to Rudra Deva that the very root
of Devas and Dedvaadhi Devas was the Adi Deva PratyaksharaBhaskara whose extraordinary radiance
was all pervasive. Just two ‘aahutis’ in favour of Surya would ensure timely rains and the resultant
availability of food and life to the public. It is thus Surya who verily the creator and sustainer of the
Beings in the Samsaara. Were there no Surya Bhagavan there is to concept of kshana-muhurta-dina-raatri-
paksha-maasa-ritu-ayana-varsha-yugaadikaala -vibhaaga and the affairs of the universe come to a halt.
Now the kind of rains take to the features of the respective Seasons too. During the VasantaRithu, Surya
Deva assumes kapila varna in the rain falls; in the GreshmaRitu His colour changes like the molten gold;
in the rainy season the colour transforms to snow white; in Sharad Ritu to paandu varna, HemantaRitu of
‘taamra’ or copper varna and in ShishiraRitu the blood red colour. Signifying the ‘ratha yatra’
celebrations of specified months, Brahma explained to Rudra that these festivities of music-dance
orientation by normal public aim at ‘upadrava shanti’ of individuals and communities and normally
coincide with Saptamis dear to Surya Deva. In fact, Indrotsavas too normally cioncide with those of
Suryas too as there would be no thefts, durbhikshas, and natural disorders. On Margaseersha month’s
Shukla Saptami day, whoever with dedication could provide a ghee bath to Surya would enjoy in agnioka
post his death. Similarly offering of sugar mixed chitraanna to Surya on that day then he would attain
Brahma loka. On PoushaMaasa Shukla Saptami, tirtha jala abhishekas with appropriate Veda Mantras be
performed by invoking the Sacred waters of Tirthas of Prayaga, Pushkara, Kurukshetra, Naimisha,
Prayudak, Rudrajata, Shona, Gokarna, Brahmavarta, Kushaavarta, Vilvak, NeelaParvata, Gangasaagara,
Kaalapriya, Mitravana, Bhaandiravana, Chakra Tirtha, Rama Tirtha, Ganga, Yamuna, Saraswati, Sindhu,
Chandra bhaaga, Narmada, Vipasha,Taapi, Vetravati,Godavari, Payoshni, Krishna, Vena, Shatadru,
Pushkarini, Koushiki, Sarayu etc. and Samudras. On these lines, if month long abhishekas or atleast
three days-week- paksha be performed to accomplish excellent results. For Maagha Krishna Saptami, a
proper Vedi or a platform with bricks be constructed and havan, brahmana bhojana, Veda paatha be
performed with nrittha-geeta- vaadya services and ratha yatra be organised as a social event.After
observing raatrijaagarana on the following day the ratha yatra samapti be celebrated. This festival would
bestow victory of tasks undertaken, health, and all-round fulfillment, besides Surya Lokaprapti to the
organisers and participants.
28
Lord Brahma gave his Upadesha to Yagjnyavalkya Maharshi and thphala in repeatedly reciting the same:
NamahSuryaayanityaayaRavayekaaryaBhaanave,BhaskaraayaPatangaayaMaartandayaVivasvate/
Adityaayaadidevaaya namaste Rashmimaaline, DivaakaraayaDeeptaayaAgnayeMihiraayacha/
PrabhaakaraayaMitraaya namaste Aditi sambhave, Namo Go patayenityamdishaamchapatayenamah/
NamoDhaatreVidhaatrechaAryamneVarunaayacha, PushneBhagaayaMitraayaParjanyaayamshave/
NamoHemadyutenityamdharmaayaTapanaayacha, HarayaHaritashwayaVishvasyaPatayenamah/
VishnaveBrahmaneNityamTrayambakaayatathaanamah,namasteSarvalokesha namaste SaptaSaptaye/
EkasmaihinamastubhyamEkachakrarathaayacha, JyotishaampatayenityamSarvapraanabhritenamah/
HitaayaSarvabhutaanaamShivaayartiharaayacha,NamahPadmaprabodhaaynamoDvadashamurtaye/
Gaadhijaayanamastubhyamnamastaarasutaayacha,DhishanaayanamonityamnamahKrishnanityapada/
BhimajaayanamastubhyamPavakayachavainamah,NamostvaditiputraayanamoLakshmyaayanityashah/ (
Maharshi Yagjnyavalkya! Whoso ever recites the Surya Stotra as above both at Suryodaya and
Suryaastama, should fulfill ‘manovancchas’ and bestow Dharma-Artha-Kaama, Arogya, Vijaya and
Paapamvimuktata) Lord Shri Krishna’s son Samba’s leprosy due to Surya Deva’s curse and recovery:
Sumantu Muni while narrating the magnificence of Bhagavan Surya to King Shataanika explained as to
how Maharshi Yagjnyavalkya attained Saalokya Mukti due to his Suryaaraadhana. In this Jambudvipa
there are three significant places viz. Indra Vana,Mundaara, and Kaalapriya. River Chandra bhaga flows
near Kaalapriya where Sambapura was famed. The renown of this erstwhile capital was due to Lord
Krishna’s son Samba who was the king. Samba was born to one of Krishna’s wives Jambavati who was
born to Vishnu naama Aditya Shri Krishna, one of DwaadashaAdityas. But Samba was cursed by
Bhagavan Surya with leprosy and subsequently due to sincere ‘Suryaaraadhana’, Sambu was cured. The
background of this was interesting. BrahmarshiNarada used to visit Dwaraka often and each time
Pradymna and other Yadava Kumaras used to prostrate to him with respects but the Rupa Garvi or the
arrogant due to his handsome form, Samba never paid respects to Narada. During the conversation with
Krishna, Narada mentioned that Samba Kumar was extraordinarily handsome and that Krishna’s several
of sixteen thousand queens gae away their hearts to Samba. Sri Krishna replied that indeed he also noticed
that fact as women by nature were frail and what could one do after all!. After some time, Narada visited
Krishna again when the latter was at ‘vanavihar’ with his young queens. The Nature was very provocative
and there were ‘jalakreedas’by Krishna and wives.Narada then halted at Saamba and informed him that
Krishna was calling him. Krishna understood the situation as Samba was greeting Krishna. The
intoxicated young wives of Krishna started to stare at Samba and on seeing a youthful one before them
could hardly suppress their emotional desire for Samba and their sweat and sperm betrayed their inner
yearnings. This situation angered Krishna and gave a ‘shaap’ to the women stating that since their body
and heart desired another youth there would never be a place for them in swargaloka! Krishna cursed
Samba that since his face and body were too attractive, there fore he would soon be attacked by leprosy!
Samba defended his position that he merely heard Narada of his information to meet Krishna and the
story of the intoxicated young wives of Krishna had no role in it. Thus his ‘shaap’ was kept in abeyance
for the time being as Rukmini, Satyabhama and Jambavati prevailed on Krishna.This incident was
followed later during Vasantotsava. Durvasa Maharshi of Rudra Deva’s swarupa halted at Dwaraka the
capital of Shri Krishna and of Yadavas. At this time, the playful Samba imitated Durvasa for fun along
with several mischievous adava lads as the Maharshi was rather ugly with lean body, improperly dressed
and limping. Durvasa became furious and cursed Samba with leprosy. Already the above background
was recalled by Krishna but now the outcome was Durvasa Maharshi’s curse. As the shameless Samba
continued to still heckle Durvasa then the Muni further cursed that the entire YaduVamsha too would be
29
destroyed soon! The now repentent Samba meekly approached Krishna and begged him of recovering
from this ugly situation some how. Krishna sent Samba to Narada for forgiveness as Samba was obssesed
with arrogance and outstanding handsomeness. Narada having taken pity advised to perform
‘Suryaaraadhana’ and taught the background of Bhagavan Surya and the methodology of worship in some
detail as follows: ‘Samba! I had travelled all the lokas extensively and reached Surya Loka. I witnessed
Devatas, Gandharvas, Nagas, Yakshas, Rakshasaas, and Apsaras in the service of Bhagavan Surya. As
Gandharvas were singing celestial songs, Apsaras were dancing away while Yaksha-Rakshasa -Naagas
were wearing ‘astra-shastras’ for security. Rig-Yajur-Sama Vedas were extolling Surya Bhagavan’s
magnificence. Tri Sandhyas were in readiness with ‘vajraayudhas’ standing besides Bhagavan Surya. The
foremost Sandhya was Raktavarna, the second one of sweta varna like of Chandra, and the third akin to
Bhouma/ AngarakaGraha. Aditya-Vasu-Rudra-Maruta-Ashvinikumars- other Devatas perform trikaala
puja to Surya Bhagavan while renowned Maharshis render the appropriate mantra stanzas. At prabhata
time, Brahma performs detailed puja, Vishnu the chakra puja at madhyaahna , and to the
aakaashaswarupa by Rudra Deva. Garuda’s elder brother Aruna is Surya’s associate cum saarathi. The
kaalapramana or the Time Cycle is the nuts and bolts of the machine. The Chhandaswarupa seven horses
carry the chariot.The two wives of Surya viz. Raagjni and Nikshubha are seated by Surya’s either side as
four Devis with lifted hands surround them standing. Pingala the Writer, Kalmas the huge bird, Maathar,
Dandanaayaka and such Surya Ganas stand in service ever ready. This kind of pictorial representation is
typical of Surya Bhagavan! Therefore Samba! You ought to seek His asylum for relief. Then Samba
asked a few innocent yet basic questions for BrahmarshiNarada to reply: Why is Surya Bhagavan is omni-
present? How many are his kiranas? How many Forms does He have? Why are his wives named Raagjni
and Nikshubha! What are the roles of Pingala Lekhak and Dandanayaka? If these doubts are cleared then
by taking efuge unto Him would be meaningful! Narada’s replies were crisp and precise. Jagatkaarana
Surya Bhagavan stated as ‘avyakta’ though ‘pratyaksha’ or Undefinable though Readily Seen, ‘Pradhana’
or the Primary, and the Prakriti or the very Nature. He is devoid of smell, sound, touch, and distinct
colour besides anaadyanta or neither of beginning nor termination; aja or unborn, sukshma or minute,
anaakara or formless and avigjneya or unfathamable. He assumes the form of Chaturmukha Brahma at the
time of Srishti, Vishnu at the time of Sthiti or Sustenanace, and Kaala Rupa at the time of Pralaya or the
termination of the Universe. He assumes thus the Swarupas of Hiranyagarbha and Prajapati. Jala or water
is called ‘Naara’ and He who recides on water is Naara-aayana or Narayana Himself as the Samudra
Rupa. At Pralaya, He assumes the role of Parameshwara or the Total Annihilator.Thousands of yugas ago,
as Brahma was fresh early in a morning desirous of taking up the task of Srishti, he assumed the form of a
‘Varaha’ and pulled up the drowned Earth from deep water and slush and created having taken his
original form of Brahma and created Bhrigu, Angira, Atri, Pulastya, Pulaha,Ritu, Marichi, Daksha,
Vasishtha, and Pracheta known as Brahma aanasaPutras. Marichi’sputra was Kashyapa, Daksha’s
daughter was Aditi married to Kashyapa, and Aditi manifested a huge egg out of which was born the
Dwadashatmaka Bhagavan Surya.The Surya Mandala is of nine thousand yojaas of length and twenty
thousand yojanas of circumference and the Mandala kiranas are all over the total area as the chief of that
globe is seated in the central position. His thousands of rays attract and illuminate oceans, rivers, and
various water bodies and hence termed as ‘Sahasraseersha Purusha’. Surya’s radiant energy gets attracted
by Agni after ‘Surya- asthama’. Surya Kiranas are termed by several names such as gou, rashmi, gabhasti,
abhishu, ustravasu, marichi, naadi, deedhiti, mayukha, bhanu, karapaada and so on.Of these thousand and
odd kiranas, four hundred ones are termed chandana being of sweta or white colour; three hundred rays
are termed Chandra of yellow colour; the rest of the rays are of prachanda or severe heat called
30
vrishtikiranas. In Varsha and Sharad seasons are of chandan type, Hemant and Shishir seasons the rains
are icy; the rest Vasanta-Greeshma are heated up rains. Suryanarayana provides oushadhis which yield
strength, svadha and andamrit. This Dwadashatma and KaalaSwarupa radiates tri- lokas and is of trimurtis
as also of Rik-Yajur-Saama forms. In the mornings He is commended in Rig Veda, at noons in Yajur
Veda, and at the evenings in Saama Veda. Brahma, Vishnu and Shiva perform regular worship to
Bhaskara. As Vaayu is omni-present, Surya too is sarvavyaapaka. Three hundred kiranas illuminate
BhuLoka, and three hundreds each the antariksha and dyuloka. Chandra, Grahas and Nakshatras besides
the Taraaganas are all brightened ony by Surya Bhagavan. Of the thousand kiranas of His seven are most
significant viz. Sushmana, Harikesha, Vishwakarma, Surya, Vishnu, Sama and Sarvabandhu. This entire
universe is of the unique form of Surya. Each and every ‘aahuti’ or offering has to necessarily reach Him
foremost. From these aahutis only that rainfalls are originated, and thus the resultant food supplies and
therefrom the administration of the Public. Meditators are blessed with meditation as dhyaana is the route
to moksha. The time cycle comprising kshana- muhurta-dina-raatri- paksha-maasa-ritu-ayana-samvatsara-
yuga-kalpa is just not possible without Surya! Kaala niyama or the regulation of time, decides on
agnihotraadikarmaa, rituvibhagas / divisions of Seasons, and so on are dependent on Surya too. His
twelve significant names are Aditya, Savita, Surya, Mihira, Arka, Prataapa, Martanda, Bhaskara, Bhana,
Chitrabhanu, Divakara and Ravi. The DwadashaSuryas are named: Vishnu, Dhaata, Bhaga, Pusha, Mitra,
Indra, Varuna, Aryama, Viwasvaan, Amshumaan, Twashta and Parjanya. Vishnu Swarupa annihilates
daityas, Dhata like Prajapati is engaged in Srishti, Bhaga administers rithvi and enforces Prithvi Dharmas,
Pusha being situated amidst Mantras performasPrajaposhana, Mitra performs ‘Vaayubhakshana’ only and
fulfills all human desires ; Indra is the destroyer of daitya-daanavas, Varuna is the ‘Jagat jeevanadaata’
and administers ‘Samudras’ staying at Mitrapada; Aryama stays in villages,townships and cities being the
samrakshaka of prajas; Vivaswan situated in Agni and performs jagatrakshana; Amshuman is the
protector of praja in extreme cold weather; Twshta protects crops, vanspatis and oushadhis; and Parjanya
rains amrita all over. He is illuminated in Chaitra Month as Vishnu, and as Aryama in Vaishakha,
Vivaswan in Jyeshtha, Amsumaan in Ashadha,Parjanya in Shravana, Varuna in Bhadrapada, Indra in
Ashviyuja, Dhata in Kartika, Mitra in Margasheersha, Pusha in Pushya, Bhaga in Maagha and Twashta in
Phalguna respectively. Surya’s radiation is with twelve hundred rays from Vishnu and Aditya; Aryama
and Varuna with thirteen hundred kiranas, Vivaswan and Parjanya with 1400 rays, Amshuman with 500
rays, Indra 1200 rays, Dhata1100 kiranas, Mitra and Bhaga 500 rays, Indra 1200 rays, and Dhata 1100
kiranas. In UttaraayanKaala,Suryakiranas increase their radiation while in Dakshinaayana these do
decrease. Bhagavan Surya spread wide in all the PanchBhutas of Prithivi, Aapas, Tejas, Vaayu, and
Akaasha, destroying diseases, sins, and all kind of difficulties. Samba! ‘Suryaaraadhana’ with faith and
dedication would most certainly cure your leprosy and you should get back your original Swarupa with
added shine!
Narada then explained about Raagjni and Nikshubha, Dandi and Pingala: Raagjni is the name of duloka /
antariksha and Nikshbha is the name of Prithvi both being Surya’s wives. On Shravana Krishna Saptami,
Surya Bhagavan stays with Raagjni and on Maagha Krishna Saptami with Nikshubha, Bhagavan Surya
spends time with these wives. The ‘garbha’ of Raagjni begets water and that of Nikshubha the entire
‘sasya’ or agricultural produce and as a result water sustains the universe as Devatas are happy with
swaahaakaras and Pitru Devatas with swadhaakaras, while food sustains those of Prithvi and on seeing
plentiful crops on earth, Brahmanas jump with joy and perform several ‘havans’.Thus there prevails
contentment in all the three lokas. Now, Brahma Deva’s son was Parichi, Parichis son was Kashyap,
31
Kashyap KashyapKashyap had two sons Hiranyaksha and Hiranashipu; the latter had Prahlada as his son;
and Prahlada got Virochana as his son. Virochana had a sister who married Vishwakarma whose daughter
was Sangjna.Sangjna’s shadow is Chhaya. Parichi had a daughter named Surupa who married Angira
Rishi and they had Brihaspati in their union. Brihaspati’s sister was Brahmavadini who wedded the
Ashtavasu and begot Vishwakarma the Deva Shilpi.Vishwakarma the Shilpi’s daughter was Sagjna
whose celestial name is Raagjni also caledSurenu in dyuloka. Sangjna’s shadow is Chhaaya also called
Nikshubha. Sangjna is not only pretty but a Pativrata too; she gave birth to Manu and Yama. But she was
unable to approach the ever fiery form of Surya and after retaining her shadow left to her father
Vishvakarma’s home to stay there for very thousand and odd years, despite the father advising her to
return to her husband’s home as soon as possible. As the father pressurised her, she left for Uttrara Kuru
pradesha in the form of a horse. Chhaya Devi and Surya Deva gave birth to two sons named Shritashrava
and Shrutakarma, besides a daughter named Tapati. Shritashrava’s son was Saavarni Manu and
Shanaishwara was the son of Shritakarma. Just as Sangjna Devi was too affectionate with her children,
Chhaya Devi was not so. Chhaya had normal relation with Sangjna’s elder son Manu, but had difference
of opinion with Yama. As Chhaya bothered Yama too much, then the latter desired to lift her physically
and held her upside down and in the process touched her feet. Chhaya then gave a ‘shaap’ or curse that
Yama ‘s feet be twisted and disfigured. In this physical altercation, Surya appeared and said that every
‘shaap’ could be negated but not that of a mother and suggested that the only way could be to the flesh of
Yama’s feet be kept on ‘krimis’ or vicious worms so that the flesh of the feet be eaten and got isappeared
and the fleshless feet be retained. This way out would save Yama’s feet and Chhaya Devi’s curse be
carried out too. Soon after this shaap incident, Vishvakarma the father of Sangjna approached Surya
Deva and informed him that his daughter Sangjna was in the form of a horse in Shaakadwipa, and made
Surya to assume the form of a male horse at where Sangjna was grazing. Then Surya in the form of a
male horse aproachedSangjma in the form of a female horse and tried to mate. Sangjna struggled in the
act of mating as she was of the feeling that Surya was a ‘para purusha’; in the process of th struggle
Surya’s virility entered Sangjna’s nose and she gave birth to two sons viz. AshviniKumars the celestial
physicians, named Naasatya and Dasnna. After Surya Deva revealed his identity, then the two horses
mated again and Revant was born with similar radiance like that of the father. After this incident, Surya
instructed his staff members Dandanaayaka and Pingala to bring before him Revant but as the latter was
too mighty and luminous they could not control but by a subterfuge sought to maneuver and bring him
before Surya. Thus the present Manu is Vaivasva-Yama-Yamuna-Saavarni-Shanaishchara-Tapat-
AshviniKumars-and Revanta are the progeny of Surya Bhagavan. Thus Sanjgna is Raagjni and Chaaya is
Nikshubha or ‘PeedaRahita’ or Free from Physical Ailments. Yama is Dharma Raja the Lokpala and
Pitrugana Swami- the current Manu is of Vishnu Swarupa-Yama’s sister is Yamuna-Saavarni strengthens
Meru Parvata-Savani brother is ShanaishcharaGraha-Tapati (River flowing from Vindhya mountains to
westward touching Yamuna and Ganga, merging into the Western Ocean) is Shani’s sister-Ashwini
Kumars the Physicions and Revant the Swami of horses whose worship provides physical fitnss and
horse-like brain power.
As Narada explained the details as Samba desired to know as also about the magnificence of Surya
Bhagavan and of his healing capability, Samba re-approached Lord Krishna. On the latter’s instruction,
Samba reached the famed Surya Kshetra named Mitra Vana on the banks of River Chandrabhaaga and
assuming upavaasavrata got initiated with ‘Suryaaraadhana’. As in course of time, Samba’s body became
just as a skeleton, one day of total desperation he cried in great anguish and made the following stotra:
32
YadenmandalamShuklamdivyam cha ajaramavyayam, yuktammanojavairashvairitairbarahmavaadibhih/
Adishasha hi bhutaanaadityaitisanjgnitah, trailokachakshureshetraparamatmaaPrajapatih/
Yaeshamandalehyaasminpurushodeepyatemahaan,
eshavishnurachinnityaatmaaBrahmachaivapitaamatah/ RudroMahendroVarunaAakaashahprithvijalam,
VaayuhShashaankahParjanyoDhanaadhayakshoVibhaavasuh/
YaeshamandalehyaasminPurushovaiprakaashate,
sahasrarashmihSuryeyamdwaadashaatmaaDivaakarah/
YaeshamandalehyaasminPurushodeeptayemahaan,
eshasaakshaanmahaadevovrittakumbhanibhahshubhah/ Kaalohyeshamahaayoginirodhotpattilakshanah,
yaeshamandalehyaansminstejobhihpuurayanmaheem/
Bhaasatehyaavavicchhinnodhataahyumritalakshanah/ Naatahparataramkinchittejasaavidyatekvachit/
Pushnaatisarvabhutaanieshaevasudhaa- mritaih, antyajaamaanmlecchajaateeyaamstiryag yoni
gataanapi/ Kaarunyaatsarvabhutaanipaasi deva vibhaavaso,
shvittrikushthyandhabadhiraanjadaanpangulakaamstathaa/ Prapannavatsalo Devo
neerujahkurushebhavaan, dadrumandalamagnimschanirdhanaanpurushaamstathaa/
PraktyakshaDarshitwam Deva samuddharasileelayaa, kaa me shaktistavastotumaatrohamrogapeeditah,
stutayatetwamsadaa deva Brahmavishnushivaadbhih, Mahendra siddha
gandharvairapsarobhihsaguhyakaih/ StutibhihkimpavitraabhihranyabhirvaaMaheshwara,
tasyateRigyajuhsaamnaamtritayahmandalesthitam/ Dhaaninaamtwam param
dhyaanammokshadwaaramchamokshinaam, anantatejaisaak -shobhyaachintyaavyatakanishkala/
Yanmayaavyaahatamkinchitstotresminjagatahpathe,
atibhavitwanchavigjnaayatatsarvamkshantumarhasi/As Samba’s stuti was heard Surya Deva was pleased
and gave his ‘pratyakshadarshana’ and cured Samba’s leprosy and assured that He would often be
visualised in his dreams and desired a Surya Pratima be installed on the banks of River
Chandrabhaga.Whoso ever reads or hears with ‘shradha’ and would be healthy and wealthy
An illustrious personality of the stature of Shiva Ganaadhipa named Thandi performed earnest ‘Surya
Aradhana’ with a double wish of the top category blemish of committing brahma-hatya, and another
which is of far more significance of ‘Surya LokaSaadhana’. After a long time of sincere and
dedicated‘Suryaaraadhana’, Bhaskara Deva appeared and forgave Thandi’s sin of brahma hatyanodoubt
but, Surya Deva dissuaded the far impractical wish of accomplishing eternal bliss as it involved an
impractical boon of individual sacrifices, equanimity of mind and an impossibe task of controlling
Panchendriyas viz. panchajnanendriyas and panchakarmendriyas and the ever recalcitrant mind. He
advised that Suryaaradhana be practised with relentless ‘upacharas’ or services with single minded
dedication and total surrender to him by worshipping-thinking-describing- praising- singing- and so on
In any case, Thandi was directed to approach Brahma Deva for his ‘upadesha’ of the practical
methodology of such surrender to Bhagavan Bhaskara. Thandi then visited Brahma Loka and called on
Him and asked as to what should a human being do to attain such perfection as would worship Surya
Deva methodically: the reply was: never hurt another Being- be it a co-human or animal or bird, tree,
stone, or any material in Srishti- by way of manasa-vaacha-karmana or by thought, talk, and action. This
quality is not attainable by Yagjnas or Sacrifices nor severe Tapas. Then nishkaama bhakti r true and
heart-felt worship be executed without desiring returns,besides construction of Surya Temples to
propagate these principles of Suryaradhana with gandha-pushpa-dhupa-vastra-aabhushana -snaanas of
33
jala,dadhi, phala rasa-ghritaadi and naivedyas, besides geeta-vaadya-nritya-stuti-Brahmana bhojana and
homa kriyas and ‘upavasaas’ and ratrijagaranas
Bhaskara the ‘sarvatithi-nakshatra Swami’: Sumantu Muni explained to King Shataanika that as Brahma
asked Vishnu, the latter smiled to Brahma and said that Surya Deva was the Parama Swami of Tithi-
Nakshatras, besides of Chandra too, but Bhaskara only retained Saptami for his own worship but
appointed of per the distribution to other Devas. Accordingly Brahma explained that in Shukla Paksha,
the Pratipaada or Prathama was allotted to Agni-Dwiteeya to Brahma,Triteeya to Kubera the Yaksha
Raja, Chaturthi to Ganesha, Panchami to Naaga Raja Shashthi to Kartikeya, Saptami allotted to himself /
Surya Bhagavan, Ashtami to Rudra, Navami to Devi Durga, Dashami toYama Raja, Ekadashi to
Vishwadevas, Dwadashi to Vishnu, Trayodashi to Kama Deva, Chaturdashi to Shiva, Purnima to Chandra
and Amavashya to Pitru Devatas. Now, in the Krishna Paksha when Chandra Deva too gains significance
as he assumes the growth pattern day by day and is thus the co-Lord beside Surya Bhagavan. On
pratipada of Krishna paksha the Swami is Agni and ghrita-anna be offered to have dhanadhanya
bestowed. On Dwiteeya, Brahma Deva’s worship by way of brahmachaari-bhojana for vidya prapti. On
triteeya, Kuberapujana for ‘dhanalaabha’; on Chaturthi, Ganesha Puja for ‘nirvighnata’ and ‘vidya prapti’;
on Panchami especially by women for Naaga Puja for ‘bhayanaashana, putraprapti, dhanaprapti; on
ShashthiKartikeyaarchana bestows buddhi, rupa, aayu, keerti; on Saptami of course the worship of Surya
Deva is extremely effective for ‘manovaancchaphala’; on Ashtami, Rudra Rupa Shiva pujana to gain
‘Lakshmi kataaksha- jnaanaprapti and janma-maranabhayanaashana’ on Navami; Bhagavati worship
assures victory as for ‘sarvakarya siddhi’, mano-deha and mahabala; on Dashami, worship of Yama
Dharma Raja roots out ‘apamrityudosha, narakabhaya and rogabhaya’; on Ekaadashi be performed
Vishva Deva worship to provide excellent progeny,dhana-dhanya- pashuprapti; on dwadashi Brahma
worship for victory, name and fame; on trayodashikamadevaarchana for physical charm and
health;onchaturdashi Shiva Puja for over all auspiciousness and satputra and Aishwarya prapti; and on
Pourmami again Chandra puja for kaamaprapti and all-round fulfilment. On Amavasya, the progeny of
Pitru Devatas are expected to perform PitruTarpana and PindaPradana, besides upavasa-japa-havanaadis
for ‘ihalokatripti’ and ‘uttamalokaprapti’.
As regards Nakshatras, Bhagavan Surya deputises Chandra and whenever Chandra is in a specified
Nakshatra, then worship to specified Devas be performed viz. Ashvini to Ashwini kumars for longevity;
Bharani to Yama Deva to save ‘apamrityu’ or premature death; Kritthika to Agni for prosperity; Rohini to
Prajapati for santaana and pashuvriddhi; Margashira to Chandra for wealth and health; Ardra to Shiva for
victory and fame; Punarvasu to Aditi Devi for raksha; Pushya to Brihaspati for dhana and santaana;
Aslesha to Naga Devas to destroy fear and freedom o difficulties; Magha to Pitruganas with havya-
kavya;UttaraPhalguni to KanyaAryama for excellent life partner; Hasta to Surya Deva himself for any
thing and every thing; Chitra nakshatra to worship Twashta for Rajya Phala; Swati to Vayu Deva for
opulence; Vishakha to Indra and Agni for dhana-dhaanya- tejas; Anuradha to Mitra for endearing each
and everybody; Jyeshtha to Indra for uttamaguna; Mula to Pitra and Nirruti for peace of mind and body
resistance; Purvaashadha to Vishva devas for achieving fulfillment of wishes; Shravana to Devi Lakshmi
for victory and fame besides opulence; Dhanishtha to Vasu Devas for ‘bhayanivritti’; Shatabhisha to
Varuna for excellent health and longevity; Purvabhadra to Ajaikapaada Rudra for mukti for sure;
Uttarabhadra to Ahirbudhnya Rudra for peace and balance of mind; and Revati to Pusha for pushti-shanti-
dhriti-sampatti and santati. Thus Bhagavan Bhaskara is the one to revolve the Kaala chakra since
Nakshatras- Chandra-Tithis- and in fact the Universe is within his regulation and is indeed highly worthy
34
of offering yagjnas, pujanas, Prostrations, Susrushas or services, Upavasas, brahmana bhojanas and
sarvavidhaaraadhnas or worships be aimed at Him and Him alone! [ Surya Purana]
Surya Deva: Surya Deva’s chariot occupies an area of nine thousand yojanas and twice is the area of its
‘IshaaDanda’ or the area between the ‘Juuva’ or Yugaartha and the ‘Ratha’. The chariot is drawn by
Seven Chhandas or Horses viz. Gayatri, Brihati, Ushnik, Jagati, Trishthup, Anushthup and Pankti.
Actually, Suryodaya and Suryastaya are mere concepts since he is constant and stable; counting from the
East of Manasottrara Mountain, the Kaala- Chakras on Eastward to Indra, Southward toYamaloka, west
weard to Varunaloka and northward to Chandraloka and the Head quarters of Indra, Yama, Varuna and
Chandrarespectively are Vasvoukasaara, Samyamani, Sukhaa and Vibhavari. In otherwords, along with
Jyotish Chakra, Bhagavan Bhanu is seen rushing Southward. By mid day, he is fully visible at Indraloka
followed by the other lokasprescribedviz. Yama-Varuna and Chandra and by the next morning again
repeats its course. UdayaastamaneychaivaSarvakaalam tu Sammukhey, Vidishaasutwashyshasutathaa
Brahman dishaasucha/ YairyatradrushyateyBhaaswaansateshaamudayahsmrutah,
TirobhavamchayatraititatraivaastamanamRaveyh/ (Sunrise and Sunset thus occur at the same position,
since persons at the various Dishas-Vidishaas or Directions-Sub Directions witness the constant Surya
Deva as they move and vision morning- mid day-evening-night and again morning and so on in the
reverse movement!). Hence Sun Rise and Sunset are regulated to East and West; actually the manner in
which Sun shines in the East, he also shines in the reverse; he is stated to stay put at Brahma Sabha and in
the process of revolution of Kala Chakra, Dishas and Vidishas get lit or get dark and the lighten portion of
the Universe become the day and the darkened areas get the night positions. Kudaala chakra
paryantobhramanneshaDivaakarah,KarostahastathaaraatrimvimunmodineemDwija/ (Hey Dwija! Just as
a potter rotates a wheel, Sun and Earth witness parts of ay and nights). From the time of Chakra’s start of
the revolution from the lowest point of the wheel towards the North is called Uttarayana and Surya is
stated to be visible in Makara Raashi, followed by Kumbha Raashi and further on to Meena Raashi. As
the three Raashis are over, the duration of day and night become equivalent or in other words, Sun passes
through Bhu-Madhya Rekha. Thereafter, the duration of day time starts increasing and that of nights
dwindling. Subsequently, Mesha, Vrisha and MithunaRaashis pass over; at the end of MithunaRaashi as
KarkaRaashi is entered into then Surya’s direction changes from North to the Southern Direction and that
phase is called Dakshinaayana. Just as a person tends to speed up descent from the top to the bottom, the
speed of Kala Chakra gets picked up by the velocity of Vayu /wind and thus the duration of time
quickens; during Dakshinaayana, the day time is stated to take thirteen and half revolutions of Nakshtras
around Surya which is normally performed within twelve Muhurtas(thirty muhurthas make a day-night);
but during the night time, the speed slows down and takes eighteen Muhurthas. During Uttarayana,
Surya’s speed quickens in the nights and slows down during the days and vice versa. Another conclusion
is that during the Sandhya timings viz. Vyushti / Prabhat of day -breaks and Usha or night falls, the
Vyashti time is of Brahma SwarupaOmkara and Gayatri and who ever worships Gayatri at that time with
‘jala’would destroy the Rakshasaas; if they further recite the Mantra viz. SuryoJyotih as the first Aahuti of
Agnihotra they would be awakening and enlightening Surya Deva; thereafter: Omkaaro Bhagavan
Vishnustridhaamaavachasaampatih, TadyucchaaranatasteytuyaantiRaakshasaah/
VaishavomshahParahSuryoyontarjyotirasaplavam, AbhidhaayakaOmkaarastasyatatprerakahparah/ Tena
SampreritamJyotiromkaaranaathadeeptimat, DahatyaseshaRakshaamsiMandehaa-khyaanyadhaanivai/
TasmaannollinghanamKaaryamSandhyopaasanakarmanah, Sa
hantiSuryamSandhyaayaanopaastimkurtuteytu yah/( The mere recitation of OmkaaraVishwam-
35
TejoPrajnaRupam-TridhamaYuktam-Vishnum-Vedaadhipatim would destroy Raakshasaas. The Inner
Radiance of Nirvikara Vishnu is Surya: Omkara is his Vaachaka and is the instant prompter of
terminating Rakshasaas. Prompted by the Omkara, that Jyoti called Vishnu gets into full action in
blistering Mandala called Rakshasas; that is the reason why the Sandhyopaasana Karma should never ever
be neglected!)
Shishumara Chakra / Jyotisha Chakra : On the Sky, one could find a dolphin like formation of a Starry
Design at the tail of which is Dhruva, who rotates on its own axis and also induces the rotation around
Chandra, Surya, other Planets as also Nakshatras as well; in fact, all the Planets and Stars get hooked to
Dhruva by the force of Vayu.Sishumara is the hinge of Sarveshwara Narayana tied on to Dhruva and
further clutched to Surya.Sishumara is coiled with its head down, AshviniKumars at its feet,; Varuna and
Aryama are at thighs,Mitra at the anus; Agni, Mahendra, Kashyapa and Dhruva at its tail; on the top of
the tail is Prajapati, Sapta Rishis at the hip position; body skin pores with Nakshatras; Upper chin as
Agasti, lower chin as Yama; Mars as its mouth; genitals Saturn, Guru as neck back; Surya as chest;
Moon as mind; Venus as navel; heart as Narayana Himself; life air as Mercury and so on. Rahu and Ketu
the Sub-Heavenn Planets are right under Surya Deva. Surya attracts water from various sources for eight
months in a year and facilitates rains for four months a year and rains enable crops of food and fodder for
all the Beings. Surya also enables the upkeep of Chandra and the latter in turn produces ‘Abhra’by
interacting with Vayu further creating Dhooma (Steam) produced by Agni and Sky leading to Meghas or
clouds. As per the Time schedule prescribed by Vidhaa, ‘AbhraJala’ as preserved in the clouds is released
pure water with the help of Vayu onto Bhumi. Surya Deva attracts water from four main sources
viz.Rivers, Samudra, various water-bodies fron Bhumi, and Pranis. The Akasha Ganga attracted by Surya
Deva would straight away release the water by way of rains from clouds without the process of
transformation to ‘Abhras’ afore-mentioned. Needless to say that the water by way of rains as per the
above process, is like Amrit or the Principal and Unparalleled source of Life for the production of food
grains, Aoushadhis, Yagnas, and worships besides and countless various deeds. Thus,
AharabhutahSavitruDhruvo Muni varotthama! DhruvasyaShishimaarosowsopiNarayanatmakah/ ( The
main Adhara of Surya is Dhruva and Dhruva is dependent on Narayana and Narayana is settled in
Sishumaara!) [ Vishnu Purana]
The area which is covered by Sun and Moon constitutes that which brightens the SaptaDwipas,
SaptaSamudras and half of Earth, the other half remaining dark. Again,
Avatitrinimaanlokaanyasmaadsuryahparibhraman, AvidhaatuhprakaashaakhyohyavanaatsaRavihsmruta/
( The ‘Dhaatu’ or the root of the word ‘Avi’ means illumination and protection; thus Surya is called
Ravi). The word ‘Mahi’or ‘Mahi Tatwa’ means Bhumi or Earth and the sub continent of Bharat is roughly
reckoned as Earth; the Solar Disc measures nine thousand yojanas (one yojana is 12 km) and its
circumference is three times more. The circumference of Moon is stated to be thrice of Sun. The total size
of Earth is fifty crore yojanas and Meru Mountain is situated at the half point of Earth. Considering the
elevation of Meru, the radius of Earth is stated to be eleven crore thirty seven lakh or the surface of
Earth.Taking into account the revolution of Earth up to the sky and stars, the distance of the Earth and
Sky are stated to be equal. All the Seven Dwipas on Earth as also the Seven Upper Lokas of Bhur-
Bhuvar-Swar-Janar-Mahar-Tapas-Satya etc. lokas are all included in the ‘Paryasa’ or ‘Bhramana’
(Revolution) since they are all in the Cosmic Egg as under an Umbrella. In the revolution all the Lokas
36
are tightly tied together; while the contents of the Cosmic Egg is stabilised with solidified Oceans, each
Loka is stuck to each other and thus Earth too is stuck similarly with the solidified water.The solidified
water is surrounded by solidified Tejas or Illumination. The Solidified Tejas is surrounded by Solidified
Air. The solidified air is futher surrounded by Sky which in turn is bounded by Bhutadi which again is
enclosed by ‘Mahat’ and finally Mahat is bordered by Pradhana or the Infinity! Thus the entire Universe
is a comprehensive and cohesive Totality!
[ Brahmanda Purana-in fact, Puranas in general- believe that the Brahmanda (Cosmic Egg) is protected by
sheaths or coverings of PanchaBhutas or Gross Elements of Earth-Water-Fire-Air and Sky; Earth is
protected by solidified water; in the second layer by Agni; furher by Air; further again by Sky; beyond
which be the Concepts of Bhutadi or the Ahamkara or Ego being the Consciousness of Self as also the
‘Mahat’ or the High Significance, beyond is Pradhana or the Unknown. All the above Beings are stated to
be a Composite Manifestation of the Supreme Unknown].
Meru Mountain was considered as the focal point of Traditional Astronomy. The East of Meru and on top
of Maanasa was stated to be the Mahendrapuri where ‘AshtaaVasus’ whose Chief was Lord Indra were
staying and that place was all decorated with gold. To the Southern side of Meru again on the top of
Manasa was the abode of Lord Yama the son of Vaivaswata Manu and that Place was known as
SamyamanaPuri. To the West of Meru again atop of Manasa, Lord Varuna was the abode of a Place
called Sukha Nagari. To the North of Meru on Manasa Mount was the Vibhavari Nagari of Lord Soma.
On the four corners of the rear North of Manasa were situated the Four Lokapalakas to preserve Dharma
and Nyaaya to the mankind. In ‘Dakshinayana’or the Southern Transit the course of Sun’s forward
direction to South would be like an arrow released as he would take various Luminary Devatas along with
him: By the time Surya would reach Amaravati of Indra by mid-day, he would have reached
Samyamapuri of Yama, when Vanuna’sSukha Nagari would be mid-night and Soma would be nearing
dusk time. When Surya would reach Samyamana by mid-day at his peak, it would be Sun Rise at
SukhaPuri of Varuna, Sun Set at Mahendri Nagar and midnight at Vibha Nagar of Chandra. If persons
experience afternoo n at those in South East (Agneya), or South and East, those in South West or Nirruti
would experience Sun in forenoon. To persons in North, Sun’s position is experienced at later part of
night where as to those in North East or Ishanya , it would be in the earlier part of night. When Amaravati
experienced midnight, Yama Nagari felt that Sun was setting in the Evenings. At Soma’s Vibhavari
Nagar, Surya’s position would be mid-day but he would have already risen up in the early morning and at
Yama’s Samyamana it would be midnight. Thus Surya rises and sets at different places at different
timings.Surya is stated to traverse one hundred and eighty one thousand yojanas in a ‘Muhurtha’. (
Fifteen Nimeshas make one Kashta; thirty Kashtas make one Kala; thirty Kalaas make one Muhurta and
thirty Muhurthas make a day and night). If Surya proceeds towards South or in Dakshinayana, his speed
increases and whirls around in the middle of the firmament. At Manasottara Mountain, the ‘Vishu’
(Equinox) is situated in the middle; the circumference of Surya is Nine crores and forty five lakh yojanas.
Returning from South to North (Uttarayana), Sun is stated to remain in the Equinox and travel further to
Milk-Ocean and then Surya’s circumference is stated to be three crore and eight thousand yojanas. When
Surya is in the constellation of Shravana and Uttaraashadha traversing the Regions uptoShakaDwipa, the
magnitude of Sun is estimated at a crore and Eighty of yojanas approx. The divisions of Planetary system
are Aja Vithi (Southern) or the Naga Vithi (Northern) comprising constellations of Stars; the divisions of
star-constellation of Moola-Purvashadha-Uttaraashaadha are born in Aja Vidhi while the constellations
of Ashvini-Bharana-Krittika are born in Naga Vidhi. During Dakshinayana, Sun covers thirteen and half
37
constellations of Stars in twelve Muhurtas due to his speed; but in Uttarayana, he covers the same
constellations in eighteen Muhurtas. It is said that the central area of a Potter’s wheel goes slower and in
the same way Sun traverses slower and in the navel of the wheel, it goes further slower ie thirteen
Muhurtaas! During one daytime, the first part is called Usha / Sandhya, the second one is Praatahkaala,
the next is Madhyaahna and the next part is of Aparaahna and then Sayaahkaala. At the times of dawn and
dusk, it was stated that crores of demons are bent on devouring Surya Deva but the Valakhilya Sages
protect Surya deva ; besides, Brahmanaas perform Sandhya Vandana and Gayatri Japa to overcome the
demons. On a Vishuvat day (Equinox) the day as well as night are of exactly same measure of Time but
from there after Dakshinayana nights get lengthened while during Uttarayana, the daytime gets elongated.
Vishuvat Time or Equinox is between Sharad and VasantaRitus. That would be the time when Moon is of
uniform ‘Kalaas’. Brahmanda Purana gives a detailed account of ‘Kaalagananaas’or Time Calculations
related to Soura (Surya), Sowmya (Chandra) and Naakshatra or Stars. It was at this Vishu Time, that
‘daanaas’ are required to be performed to please Pitru Devas. Since Vishu is considered as most
auspicious to Devas too, special Danaas are required to be given to learned Brahmanas. It is good to learn
of ‘Kaalamaanaganana’ or the calulations of Time as also certain other aspects; for instance:
‘UunaMaasa’(month of shorter count), AdhikaMaasa (month with longer month); Kala, Kaashtha,
Muhurtaka; Purnamaasi (Full Mon), Amavasya (New Moon); Sinivaali or Kuhu the days when Chandra
rekha was not seen at all; and Raaka and Anumati (differentiated nights) unseen on Purnima (Full Moon);
Amavasya mixed with 14thTithi of the next Paksha or fortnight is Sinivali while Amavasya which merges
with the first of next Paksha is Kuhu ( in both the cases worship of both Sinivali and Kuhu would bestow
wealth); Purnamaasi mixed with the 14thTithi is Anumati while that mixed with the first of next Paksha is
Raakha (in these cases too, worship would bestow good progeny and fame). Another facet worth noting
is that Uttarayana months are: Magha, Phalguna, Chaitra, Vaishakha, Jyeshtha and Ashadha are of
Uttarayana while Shravana, Bhadrapada, Aswiyuja, Kartika, Margashira and Pushyami are of
Dakshinayana.
Asked as to how the various planets and luminaries revolved on the Sky on their own without any clash or
confusion and whether some divine hand was performing the act so aptly, SutaMaha Muni replied:
Bhutasammohanamhyotadvadatomeynibodhata, Pratyakshamapidrushyam cha sammohayatiyatprajaa/
YohamchaturdishampuccheyShaishumareyvyavasthitah, UtaanadadaPutrosoumedhibhutoDhruvodivi/ Sa
vaibhraamayateynityamChandraadityograhaihsah/
VaataaneekamayairbandhairDhruveybandhaanitaanivai,
TeshaamYogaschabhedaschaKaalaschaarastathaiva cha/ AstodayoutathotpaataaAyaneyDakshinottarey,
VishuvadgrahavarnaashchaDhuruvaatatsarvampravartatey/
VarshaagharmohimamRaatrihSandhyaachaivadinamtathaa,
ShubhaashubhamprajaanaamchaDhruvaatsarvampravartatey/ (Indeed this is a mystery that defies
imagination although the entire humanity visions and feels it. There is a Sishumara-literally meaning the
killing of a Child- or a Dolphin-like Formation on the Sky and at the end of the animal’s tail is situated
Dhruva, the illustrious son of Prajapati Uttanapada [who as a boy of tender age felt hurt as to why he
could not be seated on his father’s lap while his step brother could, apparently beacause his father liked
his step mother more than his own mother; out of anguish the boy resorted to rigourousTapasya and
pleased Vishnu Deva who blessed Dhruva to make him a Pole Star on the sky]; Dhruva became the
fulcrum of all the planets and Stars bound to him by the might of Vayu Deva thus controlling all the
38
Luminaries; all the Celestial Beings like Sun- Moon-other Planets are thus controlled by Dhruva).
Clasped firmly by rows of winds thus, Dhruva regulates the movements of the luminaries and their
cohesion, differences, timings, schedules, risings and settings; forebodings, Dakshinaayana-Uttaraayana-
Vishuvats/ Equinoxes and Solistices. Dhruva is also responsible to rainfalls, high temperature, snowfalls,
days and nights, twilights, and so on. Prompted by Dhruva, Surya Deva receives water from various
sources by the aid of his powerful rays, passes it on to Chandra Deva and with the interaction of the
Powerful Wind God materialises clouds and thus create rains and the emergent water to one and all.
Thus water is recycled and again and Again. At no stage thus there woud be distturbancs in the supply of
water. Suta Muni states : Na naashaUdaka -syaastitadevaparivartatey,
SandhaaranaarthamLokaanalmMaayaisha Vishwa nirmitaa/ AnayaaMaayayaVyaptamTrailokyam cha
Charaacharam,VishveshoLokakruddevahSahasraakshahPrajaapatih/ (There cannot be total destruction
of water resource in the Universe as it gets transformed again again to preserve all the Beings. Parmatma
created Maya to protect the Three Worlds always). Indeed it was the Almighty who ensured that Surya
provided radiance to one and all and likewise supply coolness from Chandra; these are the two major
sources of virility or the power of procreation to humanity and other beings. Aside from the mutual
coordination of Surya and Chandra, there are other sourcers of water like Ganges, other great Rivers and
a number of Water-Bodies including Oceans. The heat generated by the sharp rays of Surya on the water
on Earth gets converted as water fumes and travels up to the skies which eventually generate Clouds. The
water content of the clouds turns into rains by the interaction of Winds for the welfare of all the
‘CharacharaJagat’or the mobile and immobile Beings on Earth. Invariably, rains occur in scheduled
Rithus or Seasons. The sounds of thunders occur due to the animations of wind likewise lightenings occur
due to Agni. There are three kinds of Clouds: ‘Agneyaas’ or the fiery ones, ‘Brahmajas’ or those born of
Brahma and ‘Pakshajas’ or those born of wings. Agneyas originate from heat producing vapour and occur
on cold days creating images of elephants, boars and buffalos wandering on skies; they are known as
‘Jeemutaas’devoid of lightnings with showers ranging from one to two Kilometres. Brahmajas are stated
due to Brahma’s breathing and are coupled with lightnings and rumblings of thunders causing freshness
in air and facilitating sproutings on Earth; these clouds are carried by Vayu ‘Pravaha’ or fierce winds
capable of continous and heavy rains of long ranges upto ten to twelve km of distance. These clouds are
called ‘Pushkaravardhanas’ causing heavy down pours with reverberating thunders. The third variety of
clouds is ‘Antyakalpas’ which are the most violent and of unbearable magnitude of sound as though the
Cosmic Egg was breaking. ‘Parjanya’ / ‘Diggaja’the other variety of Meghas are conducive to the growth
of vegetation and crops and shower mist in winter. ‘Parivaha’ is yet another type of cloud arising out of
the winds from the Sacred ‘Akasha Ganga’ on the firmanent materialised as snow drops on Himalayas
benefiting herbs and crops of grains.
Surya Ratha: Surya Deva travels by a Golden Chariot with a single wheel, five spokes, three nabhis or
naves, single rim with six phases, two pole shafts called two Ayanas or transits called Uttarayana and
Dakshinayana, with a girth and extent of ten thousand yojanas driven by seven green horses called
‘SaptaChandas’ or Vedic Meters viz. Gayatri, Trishtubh, Anushtubh, Jagati, Pankti, Brihati, and Ushnik.
Each day of the week is considered as the nave of a single wheel; the ‘Artavaas’are the five spokes and
the Rithus or the rim. The wheel of the chariot is fixed to its axis and is anchored to Dhruva who propels
the chariot to move in the Orbit.The Chariot is occupied by designated sets of Devas, Adityas, Maharshis,
Gandharvas, Apsaras, Gramanas and Serpents during each Ritu or Season. During Madhu and Madhava
Maasas or Chaitra and Vaishakha months for instance, the representative Devas situated on the Chariot
39
are Dhata and Aryama; the Munis are Pulastya and Pulaha; Prajapati; the Serpents are Vasuki and Iravata;
Rakshasas Kharsha and Bhima; YakshasRathakrut and Rathoujasa; GandhavasTumbura and Narada;
Apsaras Susthala and Punjakasthala and GramanasHeti and Praheti. Like wise, in each set of two months,
the designated representatives reside on the Chariot and enhance the significance of Surya Deva by
ascribing their positive traits to him; Devas provide their own characteristics to Surya; Munis render
Stotras to him; Gandharvas and Apsaras sing and dance for him; Gramanas, Yakshas and Rakshasaas
worship the Sun rays and the Valakhilya Sages lead him proceeding ahead of him. Thus Devas accord
their own strengths to Surya, Maharshis provide their Tapobala or the power of their meditation to him,
and like wise all others on and around the chariot pass on their virtues, capabilities and positive
characteristics to him; they would enhance rains, provide coolness, provide fertility, lessen the influence
of the Evil to the Living Beings and augment auspicious to the ‘Praja’ (Public) all around during their
respective time slots of two months of their stay on the Chariot.
Chandra Ratha: The chariot of Moon has three wheels driven by ten horses with the colour of white
jasmine flowers and the horses are called Yajur, Chandamanasa, Vrisha, Vaaji, Nara, Haka, Gavishna,
Hamsa, Vyoma and Mriga. The Chandra Ratha passes through the Star-Way towards Dhruva’s grip.
Chandra is accompanied by Devas and Pitra Devatas; white serpents are circled on the wheels of his
chariot. Though lean and thin, his chariot’s horses have unending stamina and have the speed of a
person’s thoughts. At the end of Krishna Paksha and at the beginning of Shukla Paksha, Surya would be
in the opposite situation of Chandra and would gradually fill up Chandra with his virility. As Devataas
absorb Chandra’s brightness, the latter would be left with only Kala out of sixteen Kalaas / features by the
fifteenth day of the fortnight. One of Surya’s bright ray called Sushumna fills up with Chandra and the
latter improves his splendour. Thus during the Krishna Paksha,Chandra’s illumination gets reduced and in
Sukla Paksha, his Kalaas get enhanced by Surya’s virility. In the Krishna Paksha from Vidiya or the
second day uptoChaturdasi or the Fourteenth day, Devataas absorb the water form of Chandra’s Rasa
(Juice) which is Amrita or Nectar-like as that is the food of Devatas. Along with Devas, Pitru Devas also
consume the Sudha Rasa on the Purnima day. It is stated that as many as three thirty crore Devas plus
absorb the Soma Rasa daily upto Amavasya and Pitru Devas surround Chandra and consume the left over
Soma Rasa by the mid-day of Amavasya to their full satisfaction. The Pitru Devas are of three types viz.
Sowmyas, Barhishadas, and Agnishwaads. Kavyaas are also known as Piratas but they are
‘Samvatsarakaas’ or ‘Panchabdaas’or those who return by the Year ends. Sowmyas are of the Form of
Ritus and Barhidas are of the Form of Maasaas or months; Agnishvaads are also called Artavaas who are
engaged in Pitru Deva Srishti.
Budha is the illustrious son of Chandra who is known for his ‘Sowmyata’ or placidity and his chariot is
like of the characteristics of water and its transparency and of wisdom. Bhargava (Shukra) is an Emblem
of Prosperity, Brilliant like Surya, possessive of the Voice of Clouds, a ‘Pataaka’ or Flag and a ‘Dhwaja’.
His chariot has ten horses generated from Bhumi and has variegated colours of brightness; the horses are
smart and of the speed of winds.The Chariot of Kuja (Bhauma) has eight horses generated from Agni
possessive of ‘Vidyut Kanti’ or of Electric Light; his horses have knack of running forward and backward
or clock-wise and anti clock-wise as also straight. AngirasaVamsodbhava Brihaspati the Guru of Devas
and Rishis has a Golden chatiot set with eight Divine horses that could run as fast as wind. Shani Deva
has a chariot made of iron drawn by mighty horses born of firmament moving at a slow speed. Rahu is
40
carried by a dark chariot drawn by eight black horses tied together only once ever. Having left Surya,
Rahu reaches Chandra on Amavasyas and Purnimas; Chandra travels to Surya on Amavasyas and that is
called SuryenduSangama or the union of Surya and Chandra. Ketu has a chariot of eight horses that could
as fast as Vayu and these have Dhumra Varna or of the colour of burnt smoke of grass; these horses have
the colour of donkeys with red tinge. Now, all the Planets are fastened to Dhruva, including Sun and
Moon. It is believed that any kind of sins that human and other Beings tend to commit consciously or
inadvertently are vanished once Dhruva’s vision is viewed on the Sky.
Reverting back to Shimsumara or the Dolphin-like Formation on the Sky, its limb-wise description is as
under: Aouttaanpadastasyaathavijneyohyutturohanuh,
YajnahaparastuvigjneyoDharmoMurthaanamaashritah/
HridiNarayanahSaadhyohyaswinowpurvapaadayoh, VarunaschaaryamachaivaPaschimeytasyaSakthini/
ShishnamSamvatsarastasyaMitropaanamsamaashritah,
PuccheegnischaMahendraschaMaarichahKashyapoDhurvah/
TaarakaahSishumaarasyanaastamyaantichatushtayam, Nakshatra Chandra
SuryaschaGrahaastaaraaganaihsah/ UnmukhaaVimukhaahSarveyVakribhutaahShritaadivi,
DhruvenaadhishthaaschaivaDhuvamevapradakshinam/
PariyaanteeshwarasreshthammedibhutamDhruvamdivi,
AgnindrakashyapaanaamtuCharamosouDhrhuvahsmritah/
EkayevabhranmatyeshaMeruparvatamurdhani,
JyotishaamChakrametaddhigadaakarshannavaanmukhah/ Merumaalokayatyeshaparyantey hi
pradakshinam/ (Aouttanapaada as his upper jaw , Yagna Deva as the lower jaw and Dharma Deva as the
head; Narayana as his heart; Ashwini Kumars as his forelegs; Varuna and Aryama were his inner thighs;
Samvatsara is his private part and Mitra his anus; Mahendra, Maricha and Dhruva arein his tail. The Four
Stars in the Milky Way never set; Nakshatras, Chandra, Surya, Grahas, Taraa-ganas or constellations of
Stars are faced up or down or curved; they are all presided by Dhruva and go around him. Dhruva is the
principal hinge in the heavens next only to Indra, Agni and Kashyapa. On top of the Meru, Dhruva pulls
one and all towards him and circumambulates the Great Meru Mountain).
Agni the Base: Maha Muni Suta explained to Sages some basic concepts before delving deep into the
Science of Astrology. Solar Movement which is stated to be responsible for the origin of all the Planets is
strongly believed to be based on Agni by the Vedic Age. Rig Veda precscribed various Agni Karyas and
Puranas also endorsed the belief. It is not only to determine the Solar Movement but also to the
preservation of Tri Lokas that Agni is rudimentary. The rays of Surya which are able to captivate water
from various sources are indeed due to the absorbtive capacity of Agni of the Sun Rays and hence the
cycle of rains, the Ritus or Seasons, Ayanas, Samvatsaras, Kalamaana, Planetery positions, and the
eventual impact brought about on the human and other beings. There are three types of Agni viz. Devata
related, Bhoutikaagni and Water generated Earth-related Agni called Vidyut Sambhava or Born out of
Lightning or Abyoni; as the night is over the Unknown Brahma desired to visualise water and Earth in the
darkness and asuumed the form of a tiny ‘Khadyota’ (glow-worm) and viewed Agni for illumination and
named it as ‘Parthivaagni’ or Terrestrial Fire and divided into three forms viz. ‘Vaidutaagni’,
‘Jatharaagni’ and ‘Souraagni’. Vaidyutaagni is not assuaged due to rains nor human bellies but only due
to friction ofwood. Jatharaagni has no illumination and is not visible. Souraagni gets terminated by the
41
Sun Set and enters Agni and gets revived at Sun Rise. Illumination and Heat promote and increase each
other. Alike in the Northern and Souhern hemispheres, when Sun rises the night enters water and water
gradually gains heat and radiation ; at the time of Sun Set the day enters waters and thus the latter gains
transparency next morning. Thus in this order the Earth’s hemispheres the Sun Rise and Sun Set or the
day and night respectively enter water. Surya Deva absorbs water through his rays and hence called
‘Shuchi’ or pure.This is related to Earth-related Agni and hence called Shuchi; the latter means Agni with
thousand rays which absorb water from various sources like oceans, rivers, wells and all water-bodies.
The rays of Agni create both cold water and hot water as also four hundred peculiar forms; those rays
which could produce heavy rains are called chandana, Sadhya, Kutana, Akutana and Amrita. Besides
these rays, there are three hundred other rays which produce snow. The Snow-fall creating rays are known
as Drisyaas, Meghaas, Yaamyaas, Hradinyaas (resounding ones) and they have limited illumination and
such rays are called Chandras. Those rays which create heat are white in colour numbering three hundred
are called Shuklas, Kuhakaas, and Vishvabhruts. Surya Deva distributes these rays to human beings as
well as Pitru Devas equitably and satisfy them. Surya helps utilise these rays to Human beings by way of
herbs and vegetation, to Pitras by way of Swadhaa-Homas and to Devatas by way of Amrita. In the
Vasanta or Spring and Greeshma or Summer seasons, Surya blazes three hundred rays of Agni to heat up
the World while he showers in SharatKaala or rainy season by four hundred Agni-Kiranas ; in Hemanta
or early winter and Sishira or late winter Seasons three hundred rays are utilised.
The DwadashaRudraas are Indra, Dhata, Bhriga, Pusha, Mitra, Varuna, Aryama, Amsha, Vivashwanta,
Twashta, Savita and Vishnu. In the month of Maagha, Surya assumes the name of Varuna, in Phalguna
as Pusha, Chaitra as Amsha, Vaishakha as Dhata, Jyeshtha as Indra, Ashaadha as Savitah, Shravana as
Viviswata, Bhadrapada as Bhriga, Ashwiyuja as Aryama or Parjanya, in Kartika as Twashta, Margasisa as
Mitra and in Pushya as Vishnu. In VasantaRitu, Surya has Kapila Varna or of ochre (yellowish-brown)
colour; in Greeshma golden colour; in Varsha or rainy Season Surya has white colour; in SisiraRutu, Sun
has red colour; an in HemataRitu, he has copper colour. Surya provides strength to herbs and medicines,
facilitates enhancement of power to the offerings of Swadha to Pitras and potency to Amrita to Devas.
Thus Sun bestows Shakti to Human beings, Pitras and Devas for the benefit of every Being in the Surya
Mandala.
Surya the Sourcer : Surya Deva is the originator of Moon, Stars and Planets. Chandra is the Chief of
Nakshatras and Surya is the King of Grahas. AngarakaGraha or the Planet of Mars is stated to be Skanda
the Commander-in-Chief of Devas. Budha is stated to be of Narayana’s Amsha. Yama is of Rudra’s Form
and is also the son of Vivaswanta or Surya Deva himself. Shani Deva is a significant Planet of slow pace
but very dominant. The other two prominent Planets of Shukra and Brihaspati are the Mentors of Asuras
and Devatas respectively. ----AdityamulamakhilamTrailokyamnaatrasamshayaha/
BhavatyasmaaJagatkrustramSadevaasuramaanusham, RudropendreyndrachandraanaamViprendraastri-
divoukasam/ Dyutrir -dyutimataamkrutsnamyattejahSarvaloukikam/
SarvaatmaaSarvaLokeshoMahaDevahPrajaapatih/ Surya yevatriloukasyamulamParamaDaivatam,
TatahSanjaayateySarvamtatrachaivaPraliyatey/ BhaavaabhaavouhiLokaanaamaadityaatrihsrutoupuraa,
JagajjeyoGrahoVipraaDeeptimaanaasuprabhoRavih/ ( It is doubtless indeed that Aditya is the source of
the entirety of Three Lokas. The whole Universe of Devas, Asuras and Manushyaas is originated from
Surya; the grandeur and glory of Rudra, Vishnu, Mahendra and Chandra, Devatas and Luminaries is all
due to Surya. He is the Soul, the Lord, Prajapati and the highest of all who is the Creator and Destroyer of
Everything. The very existence or otherwise of the Totality is due to him).The SaptaRashmis or the Seven
42
Rays of Surya are Sushumna, Harikesha, Vishwakarma, Vishwashrava, Sampadvasu, Arvaavasu and
Swaraat. Sushumna resuscitates the waning Moon and spreads up and sideways; Hariksha which is in the
front of Surya is the originator of Nakshatras; to the South of Surya is Vishwakarma which sustains
Budha or Jupiter; Vishwashrama from the western side of Sun is the originator of Shukra or Venus and
promotes the cause of Panditas or or the Learned Human beings; Sampadsawa Rashmi of Surya is the
originator of Kuja; the sixth Rashmi Arvavasu is the birth place of Brihaspati and the seventh Rashmi
Swaraat is the originator of Saturn. All the Planets and Stars exist due to the magnificence of Surya Deva.
Nakshatra literally means that it has no decadence and it is called Taraka as it redeems the Punya of those
persons who performed extraordinary deeds.
Abodes of Planets:
Through out various Manvantaras, the Abodes of various Planets are fixed and permanent. They are
named after each one of them like SouraSthaana or the Abode of Surya, Sowmya Sthana (Abode of
Chandra), ShukraSthana, Brihaspati (Jaiva) Sthana, LohitaSthana (Kuja), ShanaischaraSthana,
BudhaSthana, Swarbhanu (Rahu) Sthana, and Jyotirgana or Nakshatra Sthanaas. In the current
Vaivaswata Manvantara, the Planets are called ‘Vaitanikas’. Aditi’s son Vivaswanta is Surya; Dharma’s
son Twishi the Vasu is called Chandra; belonging to ShukraVamsha, the Rakshasa Guru Shukra is famed
as Yajna Yaajaka for the Daanavaas; Angiras’s son Brihatteaja or Brihaspati is popular as Deva Guru;
Twishi’s son Budha is also reckoned as a virtuous Graha; Sanjna and Surya’s son Shanaischara is in his
abode too; Lohita or Kuja was born toVikesi Devi and Agni Deva; The Stars called Rikshas are known as
the daughters; and Rahu the son of Devi Simhika also called Swarbhanu is the originator of troubles. The
Abode of Surya is full of Agni and white where as Twishi or Chandra is full of water and white; Budha or
Mercury who is Pancha Kirana or of Five Rays too is full of water and of dark colour; ShukraSthaana is a
Lotus again with water and has sixteen Rays; Kuja also is full of water but of blood red colour; Brihaspati
has a big Place and watery in green colour with twelve rays; Saturn has eight rays of black colour and
Jalamaya or full of water; and Rahu Sthaana is of dark colour and is the tormentor of Praanis or Beings.
All the Nakshatras are ‘ jalamayas’ or full of water and of white colour glitterting with illumination
thanks to Surya Deva and these Stars were as old as Kalpa and are shiny due to the interaction of Surya.’
Sizes of Planets:
Surya’s diameter is stated to be nine thousand yojanas and its circumference is three times more.
Chandra’s circumference three double that of Surya’s. Rahu’s circumferenc is equal to that of Sun and
Moon. Rahu rotates underneath both Surya and Chandra. Taking after the spherical nature of Earth’s
shadow, Rahu’s form too is spherical full of darkness. From his abode full of darkness Rahu comes out of
Sun during fesdtive days like the New Moon and Full Moon and proceeds to Moon. During Festive days,
Rahu goes back to Sun from Moon. Shukra Mandala is one-sixteenth of Chandra Mandala and Brihaspati
is one-fourth of that of Shuka. Kuja and Saturn occupy three fourths of Brihaspati while Budha is three
fourths of Kuja or Saturn. Stars are of thesize of Budha. Stars are normally associated with Chandra and
the former are some five hundred yojanas or lesser distance from each other although the minimum
disatance from each other one and half yojana; in other words, there is no Nakshatra of lesse than one and
half yojana. There are as many Stars on the sky as there are constellations.
43
Surya’s travel depends on the Ayana; in Uttarayana Chandra’s movement looks faster than that of Surya
because the former happens to be on a higher position compared to that of Surya. While in Dakshinayana
Sun takes to the lower elevation compared to Bhumi; It is aligned with the line of Earth or horizon during
the New Moon and Full moon days though not normally visible regularly. On a New Moon day, Moon
stationed in the Northern path becomes visible on the Southern path. Only on the Vishu days or
Equinotical days, Sun Set and Moon Rise are at the same time but not otherwise. In the Dakshinayana,
Surya is positioned under all the Planets: Moon orbits above Sun and so does the entire Galaxy of Stars;
Budha orbits above the Chandra; Shukra orbits above Budha; Kuja orbits above Shukra; and Guru orbits
above Kuja and Shani orbits above Guru. The Sapta Rishi Mandala or the Great Bear is above Shani and
Dhruva or the Pole Star is situated above the Sapta Rishis. It is stated that the distance from the
Nakshatras and the Planets is two lakh yojanas.
The various Nakshatra Mandalis or Star Constellations responsible for the beginnings of the various
Planets were narrated by SutaMaha Muni quoting Veda Vyasa as follows: Vivaswan the son of Aditi was
Sun the first Planet was born in the Constallation of Vishakha. Chandra or Tvisimam the son of Dharma
originated in Krittika. Shukra the son of Bhrigu Maharshi was born in Tishya or Pushya. Brihaspati, the
Deva Guru and the son of Angirasa Maharshi was born in ther constellation of PurvaPhalguni. Kuja Deva
the son of Prajapati is lit up with nine ‘Agni Jwaalas’was born from the Star Constellation of
Purvashadha. Shani Deva the son of Surya is full of seven Flames of Fire was born in Revati ‘Nakshatra
Mandali’. Budha Deva the son of Chandra too has five fires of illumination and was born of Dhanishta.
Rahu the enemy Surya and Chandra of Tamasic trait was born in Bharani while Ketu the son of Mrityu
who was full of darkness at his abode was born to Aslesha Constellation; his characteristic is known for
destruction and death. As Rahu and Ketu were born in these Stars, those humans born in these Stars do
have evil effects during the specified Nakshatras and would to well to worship the respective Stars and
Almighty as well to ward off the impact.
In sum, Aditya is the Prime Planet; Shukra is the Prime of Taraagrahas; Ketu is the Prime of
meteors; Dhruva is the Prime fulcrum of all Luminaries scattered in all directions; Shravishta
(Dhanishtha) is the best of Nakshatras; Uttaraayana is the Prime Ayana; Sisira is the Prime of Rithus;
Magha is the best of ‘Maasaas’or Months; Shukla is the Prime of the Pakshas or Fortnights; Pratipat is the
Prime Tithi; between Day and Night, the Day is better of the two; and the best of Muhurtas is that which
is governed by Rudra Deva. Among ‘Kala Pramanaas’ or the Measurements of Time, the best indeed is
‘Nimesha’. The best Pancha Varsha or the Period of FiveYears called a ‘Yuga’ is what starts from
Dhanishta to Shravana. Indeed, Divakara is identified as ‘Kaala’or the ‘ChaturvidhaBhutaPravartaka’ or
the Top Controller of Time. Indeed, this Universe is made and managed by Paramatma; and the Science
of Jyotisha is unfathomable by those who could very well see and think: Aagamaadanumaanaas –cha
pratyakshaadupapattitah, PareekshyaNipunamBuddhayaaShraddhaatavyamvipaascitaa/
ChakshushShastramJalamLekhyamGanitamBuddhivittamaah,
PanchaiteyhetaoVipraaJyotirgananavivechaney/ (No human being could grasp or even guess the Form,
Substance, Feature, Position and Movement of the Extra-Terrestrial Entities by mere vision. One has to
perceive, guess , imagine and believe by various media like Scriptures, Interpretation, discernment and
logic. The possible means are vision, water, picturisation and computation.) [ Brahmanda Purana]
44
Devotion to ‘Surya’ on ‘Saptamis’ (Text of Adithya Hridayam included)
The unparalelled and ageless Jnana Shakti of the Supreme Energy is but a token sign on the Sky in the
form of Surya’s everlasting luminosity and heat, constantly reminding human beings of the wonder of
Creation. The unique radiance of Surya on the Sky providing fleeting glimpses of ‘Mahan Atma’ is
named Ravi. Surya is also called Bhaskaraor Prabhakara. As he is visible during daytime, Surya is
called Diwakar. Since He is the known Deity from the beginning, one calls Him Aditya. Although the
presence of Surya was a matter of immense happiness initially, Devas started to feel the excessive
illumination and heat and as such prayed to Him to tone down these to bearable levels;They said that He
was too sizzling and literally burning Devalokas; the glow emerging from the Chariot is too dazzling to
look at; that He was always invited to share the oblations of Ghee ( Classified butter) in Yagnas and they
were grateful to do so; but He must become far less blistering and radiant to limits of tolerance and that
they would sincerely beseech Him to do so. Sun God responded to the requests of Devas and since that
day of ‘Saptami’ became visible at Prithvi also initially.Those human beings on Earth sincerely worship
Surya Deva along with recitation of ‘Aditya Hridayam’ on this day would certainly have their desires
fulfilled.
45
SupteshuJaagartiBhuteshuparinishthithah, Esha evagnihothramchaphalamchaivagnihotrinam/
VedanthakratavaschivaKratuunamPhalamevacha, YanikrutyanilokeshuSarvaesha Ravi Prabhuh/
Yenamaapathsyukrushcheshukanthareshubhayeshucha, kirthayan Purusha kaschinnavaseedhati
Raghava/ Pujasvinamekagro Deva DevamJagatpatim, ethahTrigunithamjatvaYuddeshvijaishyasi/
AsminkshaneMahaBaahoRavanamtwamVadhishyasi, EvamuktwaAgasthyojagamyadhagatham/
EdhatsrutwaMahaTejanashtashokaabhavattada, DharayamasaSuptreetho Raghava prayathtmaavan/
Adithya prekshajaptwathupavan Harsha
mavaptavaan,ThriraachamyaSuchirbhuthvadhanuraadhaayaViryavan/
Ravanampreshyahrushtatmayuddhayasamupagamat, SarvayathnenaMahatavadhetasyadhrutobhavat/
AdhaaraveeravadhanireekshyaRamam, Muditamanaparamamprahurshyamana/
NisicharapathiSamakshyamvidhitwa, Suraganamadhyovachaswarethi/(A meditatve Lord Rama was
about to commence the battle with Ravana and an all-knowing Sage Agasthya who joined Gods to
witness the Great Battle assured that the victory would indeed be Lord Rama’s for sure!
This Sacred Hymn ‘Adithya Hridayam’ dedicated to Sun God is highly propitious, extinguishes all
enemies, ushers Glorious Victory and is worthy of reciting always ensuring eternal bliss.This Holy Prayer
is a guarantee to achieve Prosperity; destroys sins, anxieties and wavering thoughts as also secures long
life with contentment. We pray to Sun God as He has fully risen on the sky and is revered by Devas for
the high splendour providing to the entire Universe.He embodies the totality of Celestial Deities and is
self-radiant nourished by His own rays and heat, energising the whole world with its inhabitants including
all the Objects of God’s creation. He is Brahma, Vishnu, Siva, Skanda, Prajapathi, Mahendra, Kubera,
Kala, Soma, and Varuna. He is Pitras, Vasus, Sadhyas, Asvini Kumars (Physicians of Gods),
MarudGanas responsible for breeze, Manu, Vayu, Agni, Prana, the Season Maker and Prabhakara, the
Provider of radiance. He is the son of Aditi, Savitha, Surya, Traversor of Sky, the Energy to perform
various things, the cause for rains, the One to create shining Golden rays and the Maker of the Day. He
has propitiously green horses, emits innumerable rays, rides seven horses, dispels darkness, destroys life,
enables rebirth and provides unending effulgence. He is the Sourcer of Gold, imparts coolness, provides
heat, causes illumination, has fire within, praised by one and all, melts off snow and enjoys sky-wide
rides. He is the Lord of the Sky; Master of Rig, Yajur and Sama Vedas; cause of heavy rains, friend of
water and rapid traveller over Vindhya Mountains. He originates heat, causes death, provides shape to the
Universe, assumes colour of gold, heats up everything, connoisseur of knowledge, loved universally,
Manager of the Universe and Great Organiser. Our Salutations to Him who has Twelve Forms, is the
Chief of Stars, Planets and Zodiac and the Great Illuminator. Our reverences to Him who rises from the
East and sinks in the West, the Master of Jyotirganas, the Sovereign of the Days and the Lord of Objects
that shines. Our veneration to Him the embodiment and basis of Victories and Eternal Rider of the
memorable Green Horses, the immortal personality of Thousand Rays and the Illustrious Son of Aditi
Devi. Greetings to Him, who is a terror to the Vicious, a hero to the admirers, a prompt and fast voyager
of the Sky, an efficient opener of Lotus and an efficient Energiser of lives. Our worship to Brahma,
Vishnu and Shiva as also Surya who is blessed with Aditi; He is ever shining, consumes everything and
has a formidable form of Rudra! He destroys darkness, snow and enemies; has a huge body, devastates
the ungrateful and the Lord of everything that shines. Our Salutations to Him who is yellow like molten
gold, has the form of Fire, is the Creator of the World and the demolisher of ignorance; He endears one
and all, and the ready witness to all! This God facilitates everything to grow and also demolishes; with
His powerful rays, He generates extreme heat and also causes heavy rains! He is awake and active when
everybody is fast asleep without even our knowing about it; He is the Fire Sacrifice Himself and also the
one who performs the Sacrifice too. All the pious tasks carried on in the Universe related to Vedas,
Yagnas and Yagas are Lord Surya Himself. Hey Raghava, any one who recites this Hymn in praise of
Adithya in times of danger or suffering or in wild forests, and in times of fear shall indeed cross over the
problems for sure. Do worship this Lord of the Universe with single minded devotion and faith thrice and
46
indeed the Victory shall be yours. Sri Rama, the Her of Heros, you shall annihilate the Demon Ravana in
a second, thus said Sage Agasthya and left his way. On hearing this, Lord Rama became free from any
sorrow and prepared Himself to execute the Prayer with utmost devotion; He cleaned Himself, did
‘Achamana’thrice, lifted the bow towards Sun God and was excited with happiness to commence the
Battle. He faced Ravana with the firm resolve to destroy the Demon. The Lord of Skies Bhagavan
Adithya, along a bevy of Gods, blessed Rama to kill the Demon forthwith.
The area which is covered by Sun and Moon constitutes that which brightens the SaptaDwipas,
SaptaSamudras and half of Earth, the other half remaining dark. Again,
Avatitrinimaanlokaanyasmaadsuryahparibhraman, AvidhaatuhprakaashaakhyohyavanaatsaRavihsmruta/
( The ‘Dhaatu’ or the root of the word ‘Avi’ means illumination and protection; thus Surya is called
Ravi). The word ‘Mahi’or ‘Mahi Tatwa’ means Bhumi or Earth and the sub continent of Bharat is roughly
reckoned as Earth; the Solar Disc measures nine thousand yojanas (one yojana is 12 km) and its
circumference is three times more. The circumference of Moon is stated to be thrice of Sun. The total size
of Earth is fifty crore yojanas and Meru Mountain is situated at the half point of Earth. Considering the
elevation of Meru, the radius of Earth is stated to be eleven crore thirty seven lakh or the surface of
Earth.Taking into account the revolution of Earth up to the sky and stars, the distance of the Earth and
Sky are stated to be equal. All the Seven Dwipas on Earth as also the Seven Upper Lokas of Bhur-
Bhuvar-Swar-Janar-Mahar-Tapas-Satya etc. lokas are all included in the ‘Paryasa’ or ‘Bhramana’
(Revolution) since they are all in the Cosmic Egg as under an Umbrella. In the revolution all the Lokas
are tightly tied together; while the contents of the Cosmic Egg is stabilised with solidified Oceans, each
Loka is stuck to each other and thus Earth too is stuck similarly with the solidified water.The solidified
water is surrounded by solidified Tejas or Illumination. The Solidified Tejas is surrounded by Solidified
Air. The solidified air is futher surrounded by Sky which in turn is bounded by Bhutadi which again is
enclosed by ‘Mahat’ and finally Mahat is bordered by Pradhana or the Infinity! Thus the entire Universe
is a comprehensive and cohesive Totality!
[ Brahmanda Purana-in fact, Puranas in general- believe that the Brahmanda (Cosmic Egg) is protected by
sheaths or coverings of PanchaBhutas or Gross Elements of Earth-Water-Fire-Air and Sky; Earth is
protected by solidified water; in the second layer by Agni; furher by Air; further again by Sky; beyond
which be the Concepts of Bhutadi or the Ahamkara or Ego being the Consciousness of Self as also the
‘Mahat’ or the High Significance, beyond is Pradhana or the Unknown. All the above Beings are stated to
be a Composite Manifestation of the Supreme Unknown].
Meru Mountain was considered as the focal point of Traditional Astronomy. The East of Meru and on top
of Maanasa was stated to be the Mahendrapuri where ‘AshtaaVasus’ whose Chief was Lord Indra were
staying and that place was all decorated with gold. To the Southern side of Meru again on the top of
Manasa was the abode of Lord Yama the son of Vaivaswata Manu and that Place was known as
SamyamanaPuri. To the West of Meru again atop of Manasa, Lord Varuna was the abode of a Place
called Sukha Nagari. To the North of Meru on Manasa Mount was the Vibhavari Nagari of Lord Soma.
On the four corners of the rear North of Manasa were situated the Four Lokapalakas to preserve Dharma
and Nyaaya to the mankind. In ‘Dakshinayana’or the Southern Transit the course of Sun’s forward
direction to South would be like an arrow released as he would take various Luminary Devatas along with
him: By the time Surya would reach Amaravati of Indra by mid-day, he would have reached
Samyamapuri of Yama, when Vanuna’sSukha Nagari would be mid-night and Soma would be nearing
dusk time. When Surya would reach Samyamana by mid-day at his peak, it would be Sun Rise at
SukhaPuri of Varuna, Sun Set at Mahendri Nagar and midnight at Vibha Nagar of Chandra. If persons
experience afternoo n at those in South East (Agneya), or South and East, those in South West or Nirruti
47
would experience Sun in forenoon. To persons in North, Sun’s position is experienced at later part of
night where as to those in North East or Ishanya , it would be in the earlier part of night. When Amaravati
experienced midnight, Yama Nagari felt that Sun was setting in the Evenings. At Soma’s Vibhavari
Nagar, Surya’s position would be mid-day but he would have already risen up in the early morning and at
Yama’s Samyamana it would be midnight. Thus Surya rises and sets at different places at different
timings.
Surya is stated to traverse one hundred and eighty one thousand yojanas in a ‘Muhurtha’.
( Fifteen Nimeshas make one Kashta; thirty Kashtas make one Kala; thirty Kalaas make one Muhurta
and thirty Muhurthas make a day and night). If Surya proceeds towards South or in Dakshinayana, his
speed increases and whirls around in the middle of the firmament. At Manasottara Mountain, the ‘Vishu’
(Equinox) is situated in the middle; the circumference of Surya is Nine crores and forty five lakh yojanas.
Returning from South to North (Uttarayana), Sun is stated to remain in the Equinox and travel further to
Milk-Ocean and then Surya’s circumference is stated to be three crore and eight thousand yojanas. When
Surya is in the constellation of Shravana and Uttaraashadha traversing the Regions uptoShakaDwipa, the
magnitude of Sun is estimated at a crore and Eighty of yojanas approx. The divisions of Planetary system
are Aja Vithi (Southern) or the Naga Vithi (Northern) comprising constellations of Stars; the divisions of
star-constellation of Moola-Purvashadha-Uttaraashaadha are born in Aja Vidhi while the constellations
of Ashvini-Bharana-Krittika are born in Naga Vidhi. During Dakshinayana, Sun covers thirteen and half
constellations of Stars in twelve Muhurtas due to his speed; but in Uttarayana, he covers the same
constellations in eighteen Muhurtas. It is said that the central area of a Potter’s wheel goes slower and in
the same way Sun traverses slower and in the navel of the wheel, it goes further slower ie thirteen
Muhurtaas! During one daytime, the first part is called Usha / Sandhya, the second one is Praatahkaala,
the next is Madhyaahna and the next part is of Aparaahna and then Sayaahkaala. At the times of dawn and
dusk, it was stated that crores of demons are bent on devouring Surya Deva but the Vakakhilya Sages
protect Surya deva ; besides, Brahmanaas perform Sandhya Vandana and Gayatri Japa to overcome the
demons. On a Vishuvat day (Equinox) the day as well as night are of exactly same measure of Time but
from there after Dakshinayana nights get lengthened while during Uttarayana, the daytime gets elongated.
Vishuvat Time or Equinox is between Sharad and VasantaRitus. That would be the time when Moon is of
uniform ‘Kalaas’. Brahmanda Purana gives a detailed account of ‘Kaalagananaas’or Time Calculations
related to Soura (Surya), Sowmya (Chandra) and Naakshatra or Stars. It was at this Vishu Time, that
‘daanaas’ are required to be performed to please Pitru Devas. Since Vishu is considered as most
auspicious to Devas too, special Danaas are required to be given to learned Brahmanas.
It is good to learn of ‘Kaalamaanaganana’ or the calulations of Time as also certain other aspects; for
instance: ‘UunaMaasa’(month of shorter count), AdhikaMaasa (month with longer month); Kala,
Kaashtha, Muhurtaka; Purnamaasi (Full Mon), Amavasya (New Moon); Sinivaali or Kuhu the days when
Chandra rekha was not seen at all; and Raaka and Anumati (differentiated nights) unseen on Purnima
(Full Moon); Amavasya mixed with 14thTithi of the next Paksha or fortnight is Sinivali while Amavasya
which merges with the first of next Paksha is Kuhu ( in both the cases worship of both Sinivali and Kuhu
would bestow wealth); Purnamaasi mixed with the 14thTithi is Anumati while that mixed with the first of
next Paksha is Raakha (in these cases too, worship would bestow good progeny and fame). Another facet
worth noting is that Uttarayana months are: Magha, Phalguna, Chaitra, Vaishakha, Jyeshtha and Ashadha
are of Uttarayana while Shravana, Bhadrapada, Aswiyuja, Kartika, Margashira and Pushyami are of
Dakshinayana.
48
Daksha’s curse to Moon and reappearance:
As Prajapati Daksha married off all his twenty seven daughters to Soma, the latter was ignoring all the
daughters, excepting Devi Rohini.The 27 daughters married to Chandra are Kṛttika, Rohinī,
Mrigasheersha, Aardra, Punarvasu, Purbabhadrapada, Pushya, Aslesha, Magha, Svaati , Chitra,
Purvaphalguni, Hasta, Dhanishtha, Vishaakha, Anuraadha, Jyeshtha, Moola, Purvaashaadha,
Uttaraashaadha, Shravana, Uttarphalguni, Shatabhisha, Uttarbhadrapada, Revati, Ashwini, Bharani.
These 27 wives of Chandra are 27 Nakshatras (the constellations) which are on the moon's orbit.The rest
of them complained to their father Daksha who reprimanded Soma to behave but Soma ignored the
repeated warnings of Daksha. Out of exasperation, Daksha cursed Soma to gradually decline and finally
disappear. In the absence of Soma, there were far reaching adverse effects in the Universe. Devas
including Vanaspati felt Soma’s absence and so did human beings, trees, animals and worst of all
medicinal plants, herbs and so on. The Sky was dark and the Stars too lost the shine. Chandra prayed to
Lord Shiva for long at Prabhasa Tirtha and since Daksha’s cures was irreversible a compromise was made
that during Krishna paksha Chandra would wane and wax during Shukla Paksha. However, this formula
proved defective as Chandra was sinking in the Ocean causing natural sufferings by way of non availa -
bility of herbs and so on and at the request of Devas to Shiva again, Chandra left only with one of the
‘Kala’, the Lord gracefully wore the Crescent Moon on His ‘jataajutamastaka’ for good, enabling
Chandra to wane and wax every month eversince! As Devas approached Vishnu, He advised the solution
of Churning the Ocean by both Devas and Danavas and latter too agreed to the proposal for the lure of
securing ‘Amrit’. In the process of churning, Moon was given birth again. This had brought great relief to
Devas, human beings whose ‘EkadashaIndriyas’ (Eleven Body parts), ‘PanchaBhutas’ (Five Elements),
SolahKshetra Devatas, Trees and Medicines. Even Rudra’s head was without Soma and so did water.
Lord Brahma blessed Pournimathithi and selected the day for worship to Chandra Deva when fast is
viewed propitious along with token amount of money and material as charity. That specific day ‘Yava’
Bhojan (Barley food) or barley made material is considered to blessed a person with Gyan (Knowledge),
radiance, health, prosperity, foodgrains and salvation.[ Varaha Purana ]
Maharshi Atri performed Tapasya for thousand Divya years and pushed up his virility and the
magnificent deposit in the form of drops from his eyes spread out outstanding illumination in all over the
ten directions. Realising the unique development, Brahma facilitated the emergence of Chandra Swarupa
and provided to him a Chariot to traverses across the entire Universe.Chandra made twenty one full
circles from Prithvi to Great Samudra and in the process transmitted extreme luminosity which when it
touched Bhumi created ‘Anna’ or Foodgrains and derivatives like seeds, herbs, Aoushadhis and so on.
Brahma made him in-charge of Brahmanas and their activities. He organised an unprecedented Rajasuya
Yagna which was attended by a galaxy of Devas and Maharshis, besides lakhs of Brahmanas who were
showered with gifts and ‘Dakshinas’ or cash money. Nine illustrious women like Sini, Kuhu, Dyuti,
Pushti, Prabha, Kirti, Dhriti and so on. At the time of his AvabhrutaSnaana or Sacred Bathing to mark the
Grand Finale of the Yagna, Chandra was like a personification of humility and honesty. But soon
Chandra changed his attitude due to conceit and power; he committed the ‘Mahapataka’ or a great Sin of
enticing Devi Tara, the wife of Deva Guru. Brihaspati, other Devas and Brahma himself chided his nasty
and immoral acivity to no avail. Shukracharya the Asura Guru espoused the cause of Chandra and Tara
49
and a fight broke out between Asuras and Devas as Deva Guru headed the Deva Sena (Army). In course
of time, Tara was conceived and Brihaspati insisted that the delivery should not be in his residence til
Tara’s delivery and that she could join him after delivery. Then Budha was born and he grew as an
extraordinarily learned Vidwan of Veda-Vedanga-Shastras. Brahma was impressed with Budha and thus
appointed him as a fulfledgedGraha or Planet. Budha performed great Tapasya to atone the sin of his
parents. Brahma considering Chandra’s arrogance and selfishness, made Budha’s placement in the
firmament right opposite to that of his father’s but Budha was friendly with Ravi and Shukra. Budha fell
in love with Ila, a beautiful young woman, little realising that she was actually the King Sudyumna a
pious ruler of his Subjects. The King entered into a forest not knowing that it was a forbidden place as
Shiva and Parvati spent their privacy and the ban was that any male entering there would become a
female. Thus the King became a beautiful woman but due to shyness did not return to his kingdom. Sage
Vasishta who was the Raja Guru of King Sudyumna came to know of the curse and performed severe
Tapasya to Maha Deva. Meanwhile, Budha met Ila per chance and married her and begot a child called
Pururava. By then Vasishta was fortunate to secure Maha Deva Shiva’s ‘darshan’ and requested that his
King be returned to manhood. Shiva granted a partial dispensation that Sudyumna would become a male
for half a year and during the second half continue as Ila Devi. Pururava after Sudyumana’s retirement
proved to be a model King administering the Kingdom on the strict principles of Virtue.
ManagalaGraha is considered as Bhumi Putra the son of mother Earth. It is said that when earth was
lying submerged in vast expanse of the Great Oceans. Lord Vishnu in his Varaha Avatar lifted the earth
and brought it out and placed it in a suitable orbit. Mother earth was grateful and asked for a feminine
boon. ‘O God give me a child of yours!’ To which God agreed. Mangala was the result of this godly
union with the rescued Earth.By assuming the incarnation of Varaha, Lord Vishnu salvaged Earth
(BhuDevi) from being sunk into the under-world of ‘Rasatala’ by the fierceful demon Hiranyakasipu. The
Great Boar lifted up Earth by His ‘damshtra’ (Jaws) even as the demon was annihilated. Bhu Devi was
stupified in bewilderment but after recovering from the shock, she was emboldened to pose a volley of
queries to Varaha Deva as to how the entire Universe got dissolved, how the process of Creation was
revived after each Kalpa, how ‘Dharma’ (Virtue) and ‘Adharma’ (Vice) were balanced and in which kind
of extreme situations that Lord Vishnu would incarnate in various forms. Lord Varaha outlined Bhu
Devi’s difficult queriessubseqently. [ Varaha Purana] Mars (Mangala) is also called:Angaraka the red in
color-Raktavarna-Bhouma the son of Bhu Devi-Lohitanga the Iron Bodied- Kuja the sin of Earth ansBha
the ever lustrous.Mangala stands for auspiciousness, could be malefic too- Kuja as a Karaka, an indicator
of santaanas, assertion, aggressiveness, ability, ambition ad passion. Mars is further identified with the
Kartikeya, the god of war. He is the son of the ParamaShiva as Kartikeya was born with six heads as the
six goddesses of the lunar constellation, Kritikas nurtured him destroyed the invincible demon Taraka,
and released the Devas from Taraka's oppression. These myths depict valor, strength and courage, and
most fittingly, the protective quality of Mars. Thus, Mars is known as the protector of dharma, the sacred
path and purpose in life that each of us follows.
Another version relates to Andhakaasura’ destruction by Parama Shiva: Armed by this powerful boon,
Andhkasura started a rein of terror. Nobody could defeat him, as every successful attack that wounded
him caused his blood to drop onto the ground. Everytime his blood touched the ground, it ended up
50
creating an army of Andhakasuras. This army of Andhakasuras were very difficult to defeat. They spread
destruction everywhere around, fought with kings and devas alike, and were impossible to defeat.
Everyone went to MahakaleshwaraShiva,to protect them as, Shiva battled with Andhakasura, but every
time Andhaka’s blood touched the ground, a new Andhakasura was created. After fighting for a long
time, Shiva got tired. Drops of his sweat fell on earth. At the place where they fell, the earth opened up.
From the womb of earth, Mangal Deva came outabsorbing every drop of blood of Andhkasura that fell
out. Thus, Mangala assisted Shiva in the battle, and prevented Andhakasura from being reborn by using
his special boon. Assisted by an able Mangaldeva, Mahakaaleshwar won the battle easily against
Andhkasura and killed him.It is believed that Mangal planet was born at the site of the ancient temple
of Mangaladeava at Ujjain, the land of Mahakaal. Since Mangaldeva was thus the child of Shiva and
Prithvi Mangaldeva was called Bhauma.The place around the battlefield is believed to have red mud.
Mangaldeva’s complexion is also believed to have turned red because of the blood, similar in colour to
the planet Marsas Mangal (Auspicious), Angaraka (Burning Coal) and Kuja (The fair one).
BudhaGraha
Chandra’s origin, wedding with Stars, Tara and birth of Budha& their progeny
SutaMahamuni desired to know about Chandra Deva who was in charge of PirtuLokas. As Brahma
instructed one of his ‘ManasaPutras’ Maharshi Atri to take up take up some responsibility to ‘Srishti’, the
Maharshi performed an ‘Anutthar’ (unprecedented) ‘Tapasya’due to which the Unique Paramatma whom
Brahma, Vishnu, Rudra and Surya reside was pleased to materialise ‘AshtamaamsuShishu’ or Chandra
Deva from the mind’s eye of Shiva and as a result flowed out a stream of illumination from the
Maharshi’s physical eyes. That radiance filled up all the ‘dishas’ (directions) and a woman appeared who
was conceived and confined for three hundred years; as she could not carry the child, she sacrificed her
life and Lord Brahma pulled out a ‘Purusha’ of extraordinary blaze with arms decorated with
‘Audhaas’and placed him on a chariot driven by thousand horses with ‘Vedamantras’and took him away
to Brahmaloka. There Brahmarshis declared that the newly arrived Youth was their Chief and as Pitaras,
Gandharvas and personified Aushodhis arrived, all the Devas and Brahma extolled him by
‘Somadaivitya’ Mantras. With the ‘Stutis’ (praises), Chandra’s glow increased manifold and‘Aoushadhis’
started germinating on the Earth in the nights and the Chandra mandala became by the day from
Amavasya to Pournami and waned till next moon-fall till the moon-rise again. Daksha, the son of
Pracheta, gave away his twenty seven daughters in wedding to Chandra. Later on, Chandra performed
Tapasya to Bhagavan Vishnu for tewnty lakh years who felt pleased and fulfilled Chandra’s wishes that
he would like to win over Indraloka by which Devas could come to his residence in person and take away
their respective shares of Yagnas. He also secured a boon to perform a Rajasuya Yagna in which Brahma
and other Devas were the invitees, Maha Deva was the protector to ward off Rakshasas and other evil
forces, Maharshi Atri was the ‘Hota’ as Rigveda Paathak, Bhrigu as ‘Adharvyu’ (Yajur Veda Paathak),
Brahma as Sama VedakPaathak, Vishnu as ‘Upadrishta’ and Atharva Veda Paathak, Sanaka Kumaras as
‘Sadasyas’, and the Ten VishvadevaChamasaatharvyu or as the Soma Rasa drinkers. Ruthvijas arrived
from all the Lokas and received Dakshinas. At the time of ‘Avabhrutasnaana’ the excellent Form of
Chandra desired to witness and without their husbands separately, came the Devis like Lakshmi without
Narayana, Cinivaali without Kardama Muni, Dhtuti without Vibhavasu, Tushti without Brahma, Prabha
without Prabhakara, Kuhoo without Havishmaan, Kirti withot Jayant, Vasu without Kashyapa the
51
Marichiputra, and Dhruti without Nandi. Thereafter, Chandra Deva illuminated all the SaptaLokas and
dominated all the ‘Dishas’.
In course of time, Chandra got infatuated with Devi Tara, the wife Deva Guru Brihaspati and took her
away to his residence despite heavy protests of Deva Guru, Sadhyagana, Lokapalakas, Marudganas, and
even Bhagavan Shiva himself. Shiva felt highly offended and invoked the EkadashaRudras led by
Vamadeva, pulled out his bow called ‘Ajagava’, and accompanied by eighty four Ganas, Ganesha,
Kubera with his shatakotiYakshas, Padma Vetala, three lakh Nagas and twelve lakh Kinnaras and so on.
Chandra on his part too elisted the support of Nakshatras, Rakshasas, Asuras, Daityas, Shanishwara,
Mangala, and so on. The entire Universe was tensed up and finally, Brahma intervened and gave a curse
to Chandra at the ‘MahaPataka’ of the latter to have enticed Tara Devi the Guru Patni and brought the
Universe to a precipice; the curse was while the entire world woud be blessed with peace, happiness and
coolness till the Paurnami during the first half a month, Chandra would be treated as a PaapaGraha
(sinful) as a Papa Graha in the second half. Brihaspati excused Tara’s misdeeds and accepted her back.
Devi Tara gave birth to Budha who was highly intellectual with erudition in ‘Artha Shastra’
(Economics), Gaja Shastra, and Administration and was known as Rajaputriya, and Palakapya. Brahma
granted Budha the status of a ‘Graha’ (Planet / Mercury).
From Budha and his wife Ila, there was a famous son called Pururava who was respected by one and all
and performed over hundred Ashwamedha Yagnas, as also executed worship to Vishnu for several years,
ruled SaptaDwipas, killed innumerable Daityas like Keshi, got Apsara Urvashi infatuated with him, and
by the grace of Lord Vishnu, secured half of Indra’s throne! Once three Maharshis personifying Dharma,
Artha and Kama visited Pururava and desired to test him; Puru made them seated on golden thrones and
performed puja to Dharma first, continued with the puja to Artha and later to Kama, but he took longer
time in the worship to Dharma, two-thirds of it to Artha and only half of the least time to Kama; both
Artha and Kama gave curses to Puru; Artha cursed him saying that the latter would become greedy and
that would ruin the King; Kama cursed Puru that he woul be a victim of ‘Viyog’ for Urvasi; but Dharma
gave the King the boons of long life, reputation for ages till Surya and Chandra would exist and that his
‘Vamsa’(clan) would thrive for ages! Having tested the King, the Maharshis disappeared and the curses
given by Artha and Kama also proved to be actually their blessings! Pururava was in the habit of visiting
Amarapura in Indraloka daily; once he found two Apsaras viz. Chitralekha and Urvashi were being
kidnapped by DanavarajaKeshi and on seeing the plight of the Apsaras, Pururava threw away the Danava
off by ‘Vayavyastra’- feat that even Indra could not in the past. Indra was highly pleased and
honouredPururava with a dance drama titled ‘Lakshniswayamvara’ that was enacted under the direction
of Bharat Muni, the famed authority on Natya Shastra. But Urvashi was so much absorbed looking at
Pururava that she faltered in the dance steps and Bharat Muni cursed both Urvashi and Puru that they
would suffer pangs of separation from each other after her fall down to Earth for fifty five years of family
life begetting eight sons and after the limit when she would return to Swarga and he would become a
Piscacha wandering and searching for her till the time limit of the curse lasted. The eight sons were Ayu,
Dhrudhaayu, Ashwaayu, Dhanaayu, Dhritimaan, Vasu, Shuchividya and Shataayu. Ayu was blessed with
five sons viz.Nahusha, Vriddhi Sharma, Raji, Dambha and Vipaapma. The illustrious Nahusha had seven
sons namely Yati, Yayati, Samyati, Udbhav, Paachi, Sharyati, and Meghajaati. As Yati renounced the
normal world and became a Yogi, Yayati took over the Kingship. King Yayati was virtuous, invincible,
and reputed. He married Sharmishtha, the daughter of Danava King Vrishaparva and Devayani, the
52
daughter of Shukracharya. From Yayati, Devayani gave birth to Yadu and Turvasu, while Sharmishtha
begot Druhu, Anu and Puru. As King Yayati became old, he called all the sons and proposed that any of
the sons might assume his old age in exchange of their youth so that he continued as a King for more time
not only to enjoy his life but also to perform certain Dharmic activities like Yagnas, chatities and Tirtha
Yatras etc. which could not be completed as Shukracharya the father of Devayani cursed him to lose his
youth and presentbility since he instructed that he should not sleep with her. All the sons declined the
exchange proposal made by Yayati, excepting the youngest son of Sharmishtha; Yayati cursed all the
other sons of both the wives, excepting Puru, named Puru as his heir apparent so that his Vamsa or Clan
would henceforth be known as PuruVamsa and by his ‘Tapobal’ (might of his meditation) exchanged his
old and ugly body with that of youthful and handsome Puru.
As Shri Rama narrated the extremely interesting King Ila- his streetvavide Valmiki Uttara Ramayana
The paramodaaraBudha Deva took pity on King Ila and during his alternative monthly turn of the King’s
Purushatva welcomed BhriguputraChyavana Muni, Arishtanemi, Pramodana, Modakara and
DurvasaMunis. Budha explained about King Ila , the Kardama Prajapati Putra, and that they would all be
aware of what all had been happening to him between the swinging pendulum of streetva and purushava
every month! As Budha Deva was explaining thus, Kardama Prajapati too arrived at the Budhaashrama.
And so did Pulastya, Kratu, Vashatkaara and Omkaaraasa too. Then there was an open discussion as to
how to rescue from the acute problem of King Ila.
nānyaṁpaśyāmibhaiṣajyamantareṇavr̥ṣadhvajam,nāśvamedhātparoyajñaḥpriyaścaivamahātmanaḥ/tasmā
dyajāmahesarvepārthivārthedurāsadam,kardamenaivamuktāstusarvaevadvijarṣabhāḥ,rocayantismataṁy
ajñaṁrudrasyārādhanaṁprati/saṁvartasyaturājarṣiḥśiṣyaḥparapuraṁjayah,maruttaitivikhyātastaṁyajña
ṁsamupāharat/
Then Prajapati Kardama addressed: Viprottamaas! Excepting the single manner of pleasing Maha Deva
Himself, the disease facing King Ila could be ever doctored and cured. This involves the King Ila himself
ought to dutifully execute Ashvamedha Yagjna addressing Maha Deva and pleasing Him’. As
KardamaPrajpati stated, there was an unanimous decision of the Muni Maharshis and Rudraaraadhana
was initiated and ‘Yagjnyaanushthaanakaaya krama’ was was launched by RajarshiMarutha who presided
Then Budha left the ashram and the mahayagjna concluded most successfully and Maha Rudra was
pleased and approached King Ila and addressed the muni brahmana ganaas all and stated that he was quite
contented with the ‘Yagjnakaryakrama’ as invoked by him and totally dedicating to him. He had finally
declared King Ila to lasting ‘purushatva’ as a King of lasting glory. Finally, Shri Rama adderessed the
mahatmya of ashvamedhayagjna citing the examples of Indra to be relieved of brahma hatyapataka and
King Ila from the ‘streetva-purushatvadurdasha’ as the golden examples.
Guru Graha
Guru is also known as Brihaspati, represents knowledge, education, law, justice, politics, positivity,
future, and ethics. When Guru is wrongly placed in our horoscope then it gives problems like financial
problems, obstacles in education, health problemsarise..GuruGrahaJaapa is performed by invoking Guru
Deva and chanting mantras for Brihaspati to please the graha as per the shastras to get rid of all the
problem occurring due to this dosha and live happily.Thisjapa is best suited to perform on Thursday, the
date can be selected as per one’s Janma nakshatra or birth star. Helps in getting great results in
educational fields, by reducing the negative results and increasing the positive results of Guru graha.-
Reduces the malefic effects of Guru graha and helps in bringing material and spiritual
development.ThisJaapa helps in bringing peace and harmony, promotes financial prosperity, accelerates
functioning of business and stability.DevaanaamcharisheenaamchaGurumkaanchanasannibham, buddhi
53
bhutamtrilokesham tam Gurumpranamaamyagam/ or Om
bṛhaspateatiyadaryoarhāddyumadvibhātikratumajjaneṣu, yad
dīdayaccavasartaprajātatadasmasudraviṇaṁdhehicitram/
Guru (Jupiter) is a planet of expansion, considered to be a teacher who removes the ignorance and
darkness and offers wisdom by throwing light. In vedic tradition it rules Sattva Guna, which is the best
Guna among others, being responsible for harmony, piece and comfortable state of mind. It rules over
man’s worldly possessions and fortunes and hence is called the Giver or Ruler of money. Guru represents
social justice, religion and sincerity. In ayurvedic practice some operations or administering of some
medicine the physicians use to do in the hora of Guru.Guru is fiery, noble, benevolent, fruitful, masculine,
jovial, buoyant. Guru is the lord of North-East direction and governs HemantaRitu (December-January).
Its color is golden, purple or violet and rules over the metals tin, gold, topaz and platinum. Sweet and
fragrant are the flowers of Guru. It is the lord of finance and children. It governs education, happiness,
health, love and respect towards elders and preceptors, good morals and conduct, wealth, respect,
reputation and charity etc.Guru gives the native golden complexion, brown eyes and hair. People that are
born under the strong influence of Guru have good growth in youth, have muscular body due to outdoor
games and become so stout that they must be respected for their growth. Such people always get the seats
vacated for them even in crowd. Native has corpulent and tall body and is wise and learned. He has loud
and heavy voice. Parts of the body ruled by Guru are liver, tumors, circulation of blood in arteries, fat in
the body, adipose tissue, morbid growths, pleura of lungs, kidney, thigh, feet, right ear.When Guru is
afflicted, it makes native extremist, having extravagant ideas, careless, over optimistic, gambler, poor,
unpopular, lavish. It gives false hopes, failure in speculations, worry through children, loss by relying on
others, misjudgment, miscalculation etc.When Guru is beneficial, it gives good health and longevity.
Native is jovial, hopeful, buoyant, humane, and of broad-minded nature. It bestows worldly wisdom,
good fortune and dignity, social and moral success, prudence, progress and much expansion in all efforts.
Rapid recoveries even from severe disease will take place if Guru is beneficial in one's horoscope. Native
thinks properly, does his work ably and judges properly. Native uses fair means to earn money and never
gets benefited by loss of others.
About ShukraGraha
Sukracharya, the preceptor of Daityas is a son of Bhrigu born to Usana. When the battle ensued between
the Devatas and the Daityas, the Devatas led by Indra had the upper hand. Daityas went to their Guru,
Sukracharya and sought his help,but as he left for severe Tapasya to pleaseMaha Shiva to
accomplish‘MritaSanjivini mantra siddhi, they sought refuge in Usana, the mother of Sukracharya,
assured them protection and by using her powers froze the devatas. Devatas prayed to Vishnu to protect
them and get them out of the predicament. Vishnu understood that the curse on devatas could not be
annulled unless Usana was killed. But Usana being awomanr without violating theprecepts of dharma,
disguised Himself as a ferocious beast and tried to scare Usana who in turn desired to turn Vishnu and
Indra to ashes. In self defence, without having to infringe the principle and under the garb of self defence,
even before her attempt to convert both as ashes abd well before the words of the ‘shaap’ were spelt out,
Vishnu killed Bhrigu’s wife with a sharp arrow and separated her head from her body. Once Usana was
killed, her powers also left and Devatas became free butBhrigu cursed Vishnu to take birth on earth and
go through the cycles of birth and death and thus suffer like all humans. He brought his wife back to life
54
with his powers. Vishnu accepted the curse of the Maharshi gracefully.There were on-going battles
between Devas and Demons, but the most potent war fought was that of Bali with Devas in which
Danavas had an upper hand .But Lord Vishnu took the incarnation of Vamana and tricked Bali by asking
for just three feet of land and occupied the entire Universe and suppressed Bali’s head to the Sub-
terranian world as the third foot! Similarly Prahlada’s father Hiranyakasipu was killed taking the form of
half-lion and half - man to escape the effect of Brahma’s boon. Thus each time Danavas got boons from
Brahma, Lord Vishnu tried to search for the escape clauses of the boons secured after rigorous Tapasya
and appeared as the saviour of Devas always. Thus brooding, Sukra Acharya, the son of Sage Bhrigu and
Urjasvati, consoled Danavas and assured that some other strategy would have to be followed to achieve
victory over Devas. Thus Danava Guru asked for patience and restraint and meanwhile practised a life of
austerity and abstinence till he found a solution to the problem from Tapasya. The Acharya then
meditated Lord Siva for several years together and finally pleased him for a boon. He explained that the
various Tapasyas performed by Danava Kings in the past to Brahma and the boons obtained from him
proved futile since they had only temporary impact and each time Lord Vishnu was discovering loopholes
in the boons received. That was the reason why Lord Siva was approached for a solution as a boon, the
kind of which should not have been granted to his opponent Brihaspati, the Deva Guru. Lord Siva in turn
gave a very arduous method to follow namely to perform penance for thousand years lying upside down
inhaling smoke from burnt husk. Meanwhile Deva Guru disguised himself as Sukracharya and gradually
misguided Danavas and taught them a licentious and wicked life quite contrary to what Sukracharya
advised before his departure for Tapasya.TheDanavas were provoked by the Fake Danava Guru went on
war against Devas who killed several Demons as the latter were disunited, indisciplined and weak.
Sukracharya’s mother, Kavya, found that Devas were drawing too near to Danavas and protected them by
putting Devas to deep sleep by requesting the Goddess of ‘Nidra’(Slumber). Indra escaped the sleep as
Lord Vishnu absorbed him into His body; He also used the Sudarsana Chakra (Wheel) and cut off
Kavya’s head even ignoring that she was a woman that too the wife of Sage Bhrigu. The Sage was furious
on learning that Vishnu’s Chakra cut Kavya’s head and gave him a curse that Vishnu would be born again
and again as a human being since He never cared for the killing of a woman and hence be punished by
learning the misery of staying imprisoned for nine months each time before the births. Also by his mystic
powers, the Sage revived his wife to come alive! Indra was afraid that Bhrigu cursed Narayana and soon
original Visvamitra would also return after securing the much desired Mantra from Lord Siva. So Indra
made a plan and asked his daughter Jayanti to disguise herself as a maid and reach Visvamitra’s
hermitage and please his mother Kavya to start with and please the Sage in his duties subsequently which
she did exceedingly well. Meanwhile Visvamitra secured a great boon from Lord Siva that he would be
invincible to any force in the Universe. Lord Siva blessed the Sage with the Mantra. Also he was pleased
with the sevices of Jayanti and desired to give boons to her. She revealed her identity as Indra’s daughter
and requested the Sage to marry her. Visvamitra agreed that she could be with him for ten years, that he
would not attend to any outside task during the period and that she would not be visible to others. Indra’s
plan thus succeeded well. The fake Sukracharya (Brihaspati) too had a successful time. But after ten
year’s timeVisvamitra left Jayanti and returned to Asuras and sought to expose the fake Sukracharya, but
the fake Sage advised that he was real Sukracharya and the one who arrived just then was really fake! The
real Sukacharya was not able to convince the foolish Danavas and having cursed them for not recognising
him left in anger. Having fulfilled his mission, the fake Sukracharya or Brihaspati returned to Indra Loka.
Danavas felt cheated and desired to convey their sincere apologies and thus approached Sukracharya with
King Prahlada in the lead. The Sage was furious as he felt insulted, while actually he took the trouble of
severe Tapasya only for the welfare of the entire Danava community whereas they let him down badly by
believing in Brihaspati in disguise. King Prahlada pleaded with the Sage very earnestly and all the
Danavas prostrated before the Guru to excuse them for their lack of gratitude and commonsense.
Sukracharya understood from his intuition that the regrets expressed by Prahlada and Danavas were
genuine. He then narrated that Lord Brahma assured him of the King of Danava’s coming to power soon
and for the time being Danavas would have to lie low and await excellent times till Prahlada’s grandson
would be born as Bali and reign the Three Worlds. What the Danava Guru told Prahlada was so
55
encouraging that he did not wait for more time and attacked the Devas; Devas lost the war. Indra was
surprised at the defeat of Devas. He prayed to Devi Bhagavati at the instance of Deva Guru, Brihaspati.
He extolled the unparalleled Glory of Devi as per ‘Shakti Darsana’ and described Her as the ‘Tatvas’
rooted to the material manifestation of PanchaBhootas or Five Elements; the Tatvas include Maha Bindu,
Nada Sakti and Misrama Bindu. She dwelt in five sheaths ( Kosas) viz. Annamaya, Prana Maya Kosa,
Manonmaya, Vignana Maya and Ananda Maya. She was the Vedas, Sastras, Upanishads, Mantras,
Tantras and multi-routed final destination and so on. Devi Bhagavati was pleased and made Her
extraordinary appearance in full form, packed with armoury and ornaments. Out of sheer panic, Danavas
led by King Prahlada fled away to Patala forthwith. Thus ended the unwarranted war declared by Danavas
against Devatas who had other important duties to perform; thus the Devi’s appearance was a warning to
both Devas and Danavas that they should not waste mutual energies in frequent bickerings. Thus there
was a Truce ending the War.
Shani Graha
Often Shani is associated with Yama because it is the chief governor of longevity. Shani is the son of
Surya Deva and Devi Chhaya and is the counterfeit of Guru or Jupiter as former destroys while the latter
applies pressures and expands. Saturn is also called holder of the keys of both Swarga Narakaas alike.
and rules over hard and laborious work as well as over responsible positions in life. Shani is a great ruler
of time and delays.Shani is barren, binding, cold, constant, dry, defensive, hard, nervous and secretive
planet. It is the lord of West direction and governs Shishir Ritu (February and March). Its color is blue,
jet black and indigo. It is considered as an evil (malefic) planet and it reigns over poverty, misfortune,
death, unending problems, delays, hindrances, chronic and lingering diseases, old age etc.Shani gives the
native dark color, thin built, prominent veins, thick nails, protruding teeth, coarse and thick hair, long
hands and feet. From the faceaf a person appears older then of actual age, being angry, dreadful, foolish,
full of wrinkles, merciless and melancholic. Shani is afflicted it causes delays, disappointment,
disharmony, dispute, despondency, dejection, differences, distrust and gives persistent bad luck, up-hill
struggles, sorrows and disappointments. When Shani is beneficial then good qualities like endurance,
economy, thrift, patience, perseverance, power of retaining secrets, permanence, stability, self control,
sense of duty towards God and man, accuracy, precaution in all matters. It develops in an individual truth,
charity, power of meditation and concentration, sincerity, prudence, asceticism and such.
[ More on Shani Deva as Surya- Chhayaa Devi as described in reference to Surya Deva vide earlier
pages]
Even while Brihaspati was explaining this to Indra, a huge number of Rakshasas attacked
Swarga, harassed Devatas and occupied Swarga. Devas and Indra approached Brahma and the
latter reached Kshira Samudra to call on Narayana. Vishnu advised that Devatas should prevail
upon Asuras and together churn Ksheera Samudra with Mountain Mandhara as the churning
stick, Vasuki as the rope to churn and he by assuming the Incarnation of Kurma would balance
the Mountain to enable the churning so that Amrita would be produced; Vishnu further planned
that he would ensure that Amrita the life lasting drink so produced would be distributed to
Devatas and not the Asuras. The Grand Plan worked as several Asuras perished out of their ego
56
to opt for the serpent’s mouth that emitted poisonous flames. In the process of churning emerged
Surabhi-Kamadhenu- the Sacred Cow, Varuni Devi carrying Sura the intoxicating drink, Parijata
Tree which spread fragrance far and with its flowers and Apsara Ganas all rejected by Asuras as
they should Amrita and nothing else! The churning continued and Chandra Deva was
materialised whom Maha Deva accepted; KaustubhaRatna was accepted by Vishnu; a huge mass
of poisonous creepers were given away to Naaga Devatas; Aoushadhis the herbal medicines
were materialised and MahaBhairava opted for it. Then emerged Dhavantari in his Kamandalu or
the Sacred Vessel the much-awaited Amrita but for a while there was a veil of Maya around the
vessel as it looked too innocuous. Devi Lakshmi appeared and Muni Ganas and Devas hailed her
praising her: LakshmimKsheera Samudra Raja Tanayaam Shri RangaDhaameshwareem,
Daasibhutasamasta Deva vanitaamLokaikadeepaankuraam/
ShrimanmandakataakshalabdhavibhavaBrahmendruGangaadharaam,
TwaamTrailokyakutumbeneemSarasijaamVandeyMukundaPriyaam! They also recited Shri
Suktam by saying: HiranyavarnaamHarineem Suvarna
RajatasrajaamChandraamHiranyayeemLakshmeemjatavedomamaahava,
TaamavahaJaatavedoLakshmeemanapagaamineem,
YasyaamHiranyamvindeyamgaamashwamPurushaanaham/ etc. The highly excited Gandharvas
jumped into symphonic singing and Apsaras danced with ecstacy; Ganga and other Sacred
Rivers fetched cool and fragrant waters while ‘AshtaDiggajas’ or the Celestial Elephants got her
bathed. Vishwakarma gifted invaluable Dresses and Ornaments and Maha Lakshmi reached her
rightful Place of Vishnu’s heart! With the excitement of Shri Lakshmi’s arrival, there was a
temporary diversion but soon enough both Devas and Asuras suddenly realised that
Dhanvantari’s Golden Kamandalu was replete with Amrita! Then suddenly flared up a scramble
of swiftly changing hands and a pandemonium was created; a reverberating female voice halted
the mayhem and there was an extraordinarily graceful embodiment of Beauty named Mohini
Devi who said: ‘Gentlemen! What for is this fight! I am a neutral person and I shall to justice to
all; hand over the Golden Vessel to me and I will surely distribute Amrtita in an orderly manner’;
by so saying she made formations of Devas and Asuras and served Amrita to Devas first; being
under a heavy cloud of Maya, the Asuras continued to await their turn. Rahu however sat in the
queue of Devas and as soon as Surya and Chandra recognised him the latter objected even while
Rahu consumed drops of Amrita already; Devi Mohini lifted her serving spoon and sliced Rahu’s
body into two and his head flew up to the skies discarding the body trunk behind. As the service
of Amrita was over, Mohini Devi disappeared and the spell of Maya was lifted. An uproar broke
out and Devaasura battle began but since Devas had already consumed Amrita their prowess was
multiplied while the Asuras lost their shine and had to retire to PaataalaLokas.SageNarada
visited Kailasa and conveyed the happenings at Samudra Mathana and the revelation of Devi
Mohini as the arbiter to distribute Amrita to Shiva and Parvati; he also narrated as to how Vishnu
Maya was at full display and but for the incident of Rahu, Asuras became powerless and fled
back to Pataalas. Both Parvati and Shiva were amused and visited Vishnu and Devi Lakshmi
and requested Vishnu to display the Unparalleled Beauty of Mohini. As Vishnu assumed that
Form of Mohini, Shiva was unable to resist and chased her even while Devi Uma was protesting;
he finally embraced her and the outcome was the birth of MahaSasta who had the capability of
destroying crores of Daityas. [Brahmanda Purana]
57
JapaakusumasankaashamKaashyapeyammahaadyutimTamorim,
sarvapaapaghnampranatosmiDivaakaram/ This is how one prays to Surya Narayana at one’s first
darshan of Sun early morning as Divakara the Day long Deity and the proud son of Kashyapa Muni who
shines day long with the brightness of the hues of Japakusuma flowers demolishing darkness and all kinds
of sins. Surya Narayana Koyil which is near Kumbhakonam by 18 km is famed for the Sun-
worshipping Chola Kings in 10th century built with stone as Surya depicted in a seven horse drawn flying
chariot faced west, along with other shrines of Kasi Vishwanatha, Devi Visalakshi, Brihaspati and Kol
Tirtha Vinayaka in the vicinity demanding nine Pradakshinas of the complex. It is stated that before
paying respects at the Suryanarayana Kovil, one is required to pay homage at Tirumangalakkudi Shiva
sthalam near Mayladutturai at Pranateshwara and Mangala Nayaki as Devi Parvati was rid of a curse to
become a parrot and got re-wedded as Mangala on Makara Sankranti day and hence the Place known
asMangalaKshetra celebrating festival there. Makara Saptami / Ratha Saptami in Maagha Month-
coinciding with Tamil Thai month-is an important festival at the Suryanarayana Koil.
Suryashtakam:Adidevanamastubhyampraseeda mama
BhaskaraDivaakaranamastubhamPrabhakaranamostute,
SapaswarathamaarudhamPrachandamKashyapaatmajamshvetapadmadharamDevam tam
Suryampranamaamamyham/ Lohitamrathamaarudhamsarvalokapitaamaham, mahaapaapaharamDevam
tam Suryampranammmyaham/ Traigunyam cha mahaashuram Brahma Vishnu
Maheshwaram,MahaapaapaharamDevam tam Suryampranamaamyaham/ Brumhitamtejahpunjam cha
Vaayumaakaasha -meva cha, Prabhum cha sarvalokaanaam tam Suryampranamaamyaham/
Bandhukapushpasankaashamhaarakundalabhushitam,
ekachakradharamDevamamSuryampranamaamyaham/ Tam Suryamjagatraarammahatejahpradipanam,
mahapaapa haram Devam tam Suryampranamaamya -ham/ Tam
Suryamjagataanaathamjnaanavigjnaanamokshadam, mahapaapaharamDevam tam
Suryampranamaamyaham/ Suryaashtakampathennityamgrahapeedaanpranaashanam,
aputrolabhateputramdaridrodhanavaanbhavet/ Aaryaahsaptasadaayastusaptamyaasaptadhaajapet,
tasyagehamchadeham cha padamaa Satyam aunchati/
Nidhireshadaridraanaamroginaamparamoushadham, siddhi
sakalakaryaanaamgaayeyamsamsmritaaRaveh/
TingalurChandra/ Kailasanatha Temple some 18 km away from Kumbhakonam, where the main Idol
Shiva as Kaisashanatha but is basically dedicated to Chanda Deva.
Dadhishankhatushaaraabhamksheeraarnavasamudbhavam,
NamaamiSashinamSomamShambhormakutabhushanam/Materialised from the Ocean of Milk and
adorned as Maha Deva’s shining headgear ornament, Chandra Deva is hereby venerated; indeed Chandra
is the Lord of Heath and Medicines as also of Peace and Tranquility. There is a separate Shrine of the
Lord Chandra at the Kalasha natha Temple. The legend of this Chandra Kshetra reveals that a Nayanar
was a great devotee of Appaar viz. Parama Shiva and one day he decided to worship at his residence with
piety and pomp by calling his friends, associates and neighbours at an appropriate function.
Unfortunately, the son of the Nayanar was bitten by a poisonous snake during the puja. The Nayanar
family was shattered at the misfortune but instead of blaming Appan for the misfotune, intensified his
prayers undaunted even while the son was almost dying.Appar directed Chandra the God of Medicines
and Good Health to cure the child and reverse his condition of sinking due to the effect of poison. The
58
ever grateful Nayanar broke into tearful prayers and in the company of the co-devotees sang praises of
Chandra Deva and the Adi Deva Appar and celebrated the devotional function.
AlangudiGuru Sthalam:
DevanaamchaRisheenamchaGurumkanchanasannibham,BuddhibhutamTrilokesham tam
namaamiBrihaspatim/ ( I salute Brihaspati the Grand Guide and Mentor to Devas and Rishis who is like
the molten gold with which to create Celestial Ornaments of Virtue and Existence; he is the One who
leads to Knowledge and Mental Sharpness with which to lead to Supreme Realisation). Well within a
distance of 18 km. the ApatSahayeswara Temple of Parama Shiva who was the ‘Garala Kantha’ or the
Singular Devourer of Deadly Poisonous Flames called ‘Haalaahala’ that engulfed the Universe and saved
the very Existence or Creation as Deva Danavas ventured to materialise Amrit! Indeed He is the Saviour
of Dangers and Obstacles in human life! Besides the Temple of ApatkaalaSahaaya or the Unique Refuge
Point to Devotees, Alangudi Guru Sthala is also the Abode of Dakshina Murti the Unparalleled Advisor
of Virtue and Righteousness viz. Brihaspati. Indeed the Illustrious Nayanars or Shaivite Poet Saints were
never tired of the glories of Maha Deva.
59
Shukraas Agnishwaraar Temple at Kanjanor some 20 km. from Kumbhakonam is popular since Shukra
is identified as Parama Shiva himself in the LingaSwarupa which is omnipresent and all-pervading:
Himakundatushaaraabhamdaityaanaamparamamgurum, Sarva shastra
pravaktaaramBhargavampranamaamyaham/ Built by late Chola Kings and renovated by Krishna deva
Raya of Vijayanagar Empire, this famed Shukra Temple is stated as Shukra within Maha Deva. Maha
Deva represents both the virtuous and vicious aspects of Srishti and seeks to balance shades of darkness
and brightness alike. Universe as created by the Supreme is indeed a mix of Satwa-Rajasika-TamoGunas
and if there were a Deva Guru, there ought to be a representation of a Shukra too as the Danava-Daithya-
Rakshasa Guru and between the two, transgression of limits neither way is permitted; after all in the
scheme of events complete perfection is not possible and to err is human but the playful Almighty ensures
that the frontiers of Good and and Bad are ably guarded with built- in checks and balances! The legendary
belief of Agnishwarar Temple at Kanjanor is that Shiva obliged Parashara Muni the father of Veda Vyasa
with a performance of Cosmic Dance at this Temple, bringing amply out about this aspect of Srishti to
balance the impulses of life!
Shaneshwara Temple at Tirunallar is 55 km away from Kumbhakonam called Darbhaaranyam in the past
or the Forest of Darbhas or kusha grass, utilised in all Sacred Acts or Deva- PitruKaryas.
DarbhaaranyeshwaraLinga is the Prime Dety worshipped at thus Temple which is essentially of
Shaneshwara or Shiva as Shani Deva. Neelaanjanasamaabhaasam Ravi
putramYamaagrajamChaayaaMartaandasambhutam tam namaamiShanaishacharam/ (My salutations to
you Shani Devata! You are of the spendour of blue saffires and as the illustrious son of Surya Deva and
elder brother of Lord Yama Dharma Raja; you are also the son of Chhaya Devi, the alter form of Sanjana
Devi).[ Sanjana Devi the daughter of Vishwakarma was unable to withstand the oppressive heat and
radiance of Surya Deva and could see him excepting wobbly and unsteady eyes. Their union gave birh to
Vaivaswata Manu and Yama Dharma Raja. But the annoyed Surya cursed Sanjana that she would give
birth to a female as a river whose course was uneven and unsteady.Then Sanjana created a Chhaya
Sanjana (her shadow), briefed her and left for his father and since the latter too was upset, assumed the
form of a mare to perform Tapasya to reducethe severity of Surya. Then meanwhile Shanaischara was
born to Chhaya Devi. Surya on knowing the truth assumed the form of a horse and their mating led to the
birth of Revanta. Later on the Sanjana-Chhaya combine gave Surya the blessing of the birth of Ashwini
Kumars, the physicians of Devas].The Shaneeshwara Temple at Tirunallar mainly displays the
Dharbhaaranyeshwara stated to have been made of Darbhas and is essentially embodied as Shaneshwara.
Worship and Abhishekas to Darbheshwara are learnt to represent those of Shaneshwara as Maha Deva
represents the aspects of Lord Shaneshwara as well. Both theTemples of this and that of the neigbouring
Tiruvallur’s Temple- as built in 7th century by Chola Kings- highlight two principal aspects of retribution-
reward of Shanaischara and of Sangita-Natya of Fine Arts represented by at Nataraja do signify indeed
the two features of Maha Deva!
Rahu Sthalaor TiruNageswaram is the Sacred and widely acclaimed Abode of Rahu Graha as embodied
in the Maha Naga NathaLinga is hardly 6 km away from Kumbhakonam right on the banks of Kaveri
River prayed to as
folllows:ArthakaayamMahaVeeramChandradityavimardanamSimhikagarbhasambhutam tam
Rahumpranamaamyaham/ (Rahu Deva! You possess half divine and half serpent physical form. You are
the son of Simhika Devi the daughter of Hiranya kashipu; a valiant and resourceful champion of
KsheeraSagaraMathana leading to the emergence of Amrita and the punisher of Surya and Chandra even!
60
My sincere salutations to you!) This Rahu Sthala is also called earlier as Sanbagaranya or the wild forest
of Senbaga Trees infested by poisonous serpents. This is thus the habitat of NaganathaLinga and Devi
Parvati as GiriGujambal to whose Swarupas that Indra performed deepTapasya to, to absolve a curse by
Maharshi Gautami since he tricked and molested Ahalya the latter’s wife. TiruNageshwara is also
distinguished as the hallowed Place where the illustiousMahaSarpas like Adi Sesha, Karkotaka and
Takshaka lined up for Tapasya to Maha Deva and secured their blessings. The Temple complex is a
master piece of typical CholanArchitenture stated to have been built in 10th Century with excellent
campus of four gates, with the Main Naga nathaLinga, and separate shrines for Piramani Parvati,
GiriGujamba Parvati, Rahu Deva with his spouses, Vinayaka with Ganesha Yantra as per inscription, and
of course Nandi before Naga natha. The Rituals are regular six times daily and highly crowded daily Rahu
Abhishakas as per respective Rahu Kala Prathamas; holiday Rahu Kaala Abhishekas are extraordinary. A
fantastic feature of the Rahu kaalaAbhishakas is the clearly visible sight of white milk turning blue and
crowds crave to see the same! The easy and traditional way of learning one-and half duration of daily
Rahu Kaala is on the basis of the following viz. Mother Saw Father Wearing The Two Socks to count 7.30
to 9 Am, 9-10 .30 Am, 10.30 to noon, 12 to 1.30 pm, 1.30 pm-3 pm, 3 pm- 4. 30 pm and 4.30-6 pm.
Ketu Sthala: is 57 km from Kumbhakonam and just 2 km from Pompuhar at Keelaperumalpaalam as the
Temple of Naganatha Swami and Soundarya Nayakiie. Shiva and Parvati Swarupas.
Palashapushpasankashamtaarakagrahamastakam, RoudramRoudratmakamghoram tam
Ketumpranamaamyaham/ Iti Vyasa mukodgeetam yah
pathetsusamaahitamDivaavaayadivaaratrouavighnashantirbhavishyati/ (Our salutations to you Ketu
Deva! You are of the brighteness of Palasa flowers placed on your hood which is at the top of Stars and
Grahas. You are indeed frightening, breathtaking and spiteful. Do kindly pardon my shortcomings and be
forgiving! If one recites the entire Navagraha Stotra from Surya Deva onward to all the Nava Grahas
sincerely as Scripted by Veda Vyasa himself day and night then there would never be obstacles in daily
life but would get fulfillment of wishes and contentment). At this Temple, ‘vidhipoorvakasnanas’in the
Naaga Tirtha woud indeed bestow happiness and peace of mind with the blessings of Naga natha and
Soundarya Naayaki well settled in this Temple.
BRIHADARANYAKA
The descendants of Prajapati Brahma are classified as Devas and Asuras and while the former are few in
number and younger in age, Asuras are larger and older. They vie with each other for Supremacy over
each other. Then Devas decided in mutual agreement to dominate in the Lokas by way of performing
Sacrifices viz. Jyotishtoma through ‘Udgitha’ or through identity with Vital Energy as prescribed in
Scriptures delivered by Brahma himself and as per the repetition of the relevant Mantras. The Deity
named ‘Duur’ is what resisted the evil energies sought by the Asuras and this Deity is a perfect antithesis
of the evil efforts and far from Mrityu /Death too. Having invoked speech, hearing, seeing and the rest of
Panchendriyas, Mind and Chandra were awaken: ( I.iii.16) Athamanotyavahat; tadyadaamrityumatyam -
ucchayatsaChandramaaabhavat; sosouChandrahparenamrityumatikraantobhati; evam ha
vaaenmeshaaDevataamrityumativahatiyaemamVedaa/ (The Deity then carried the mind whose
61
aberrations and impurities are cleared and also overcome by the fear of death; indeed Chandra rules the
mind!
62
Everlasting Truth! In other words, the Self which is transitory and the Supreme is eternal, what is
percievable and the other Unimaginable, besides one is limited Truth and the other all pervasive yet
Undefined.) II.iii.2) TadetanMurthamyadanyadvaayoschaantarikshaaccha; etanamrityam, eatasthitam,
etat Sat, tasyaitasyamurtasya, etasyamurtasyaetasthitasya, etasysataesharasoyaeshatapati,
satohyesharasaah/ ( This gross form is different from ‘Vayu-raksha’ or the supportive Air and Ether and
as such is mortal, limited, and distiguishable. It is atleast visible and defined if not unlimited like Surya
orChandras )
II.v.7) AyamChandrahSarveshaambhutaanaammadhu,
asyachandrasyasarvaanibhutaanimadhu;yashchaayamasmimshchandretejomayomritamayahpurusghah,
yashchayamadhyaatmammaanasastejomayomritamayah Purusha, ayamevasayoyamatmaa; idamamritam,
idam Brahma idamsarvam/
(Now Chandra the Moon is of extreme sweetness of honey and so are all the Beings in Srishti. This
unique Chandra Deva is not only the incarnation of pleasant coolness and brightness but is also immortal
akin to mind of various Beings in the Globe; this is also identified with the personification of luminosity,
eternity, knowledge and the Antaratma or the Interior Self that is directly aligned to and a close reflection
of Paramatma the Ultimate!)
(Those who depart from the world having well-qualified through sacrifices to Agnihotra, charities, and
austerities like performance of vratas and so on would reach the zone of smoke where too deities of
smoke are encountered: from there the Deity of Kaalamaana or Time from days and nights to weeks,
fortnights, months , half- years as per Dakshinayana to the PitruLoka and Uttaraayana to reach the
MoonorSunwhere they receive food and drink. It would be at that place they enjoy the company of Devas
and even enjoy the taste of Soma Juice for a while till their aggregate account of virtue called them up
either to thrive or reduce. As the positive impact of previous ‘Karma’ would get drained out, then that
Being gets transformed as ether/ sky and resume its return journey from ether to air, from air to rain and
from rain back to earth. On reaching the earth, the Being would turn into some kind of foodgrain say rice
63
or barley; as explained in VI.ii.11 above that the food would be generated as per the ‘aahuti’ to a woman
as ‘the fifth oblation’to Agni. None could predict as to which type of birth the end product could be! It
might be a human being or an animal or an insect! Indeed, the first question of the King is replied by
saying that there would be a divergence of Beings after death, the second one is related as to how the
other be never filled up by persons dying again and again, the third query related to to the number of
oblations to Agni were offered by noble human beings, the fourth one as to how many human forms have
access to Devas and Pitru devas and finally how many beings would lie between father and mother or
heaven and earth! Indeed all the questions have been replied to in the context of transmigration of Souls!)
KATHOPANISHAD
Nityonityaanaamchetanschetanaamekobuhunaamyovidadhaatikaamaan,
tamaatmasyamyenupashyantidheeraah;
teshaamshaantihshasvatonetareshaam//Tadetaditimanyantenirdeshyamparamamsukham, katham nu
tad vijaaneeyaamkimubhaativibhaativaa// Na
taraSuryobhaatinachandrataarakamnemaavidyutobhaantikutoyamagnih,
Tamevabhaantamanubhaatisarvamtasyabhashaasarvamidamvibhati// II.ii.14-15
(The Self enters inside all the Beings, like Fire enters the world, by assuming varied forms and
shapes; this is in its own raw form just like the sky as the body warmth. The Self again enters the
world like Air does in varied forms, intensity of speed etc. as the breathing of the Beings. The Self is
not disturbed by the sorrows or joys of the Being just as Sun- the eye of the Universe, is totally
unaffected by the natural calamities and rejoicings in the world; the superimposition of the illnessess
or the wellness of the concerned body is hardly a matter of concern to the Self as that indeed is
supernatural beyond the material world. The Inner Self like the Supreme is therefore totally
independent, unique, and all pervasive yet creates myriad forms all of the homogenous and
untarnished Purity called Consciousness. It is stated that those discerning persons do visualise the
Self in the hearts of themselves as that is not corruptible by material pulls nor subject to the
influences of body organs and senses!May there be eternal peace and contentment to withdraw
themselves into introspection and discard the frivolties and absorb the magnificence of the Self that is
what Brahman all about! To a genuine query as to how one should know the Supreme Bliss; is it self
radiant or not! The reply would inevitably be as to how Sun shines; how the Moon and Stars are
luminous; how do one would witness flashes of lightnings on the Sky and indeed how is Fire so
beaming and glowing! Are not all these indications of that Brahman whose glory is brilliant!)
TAITTIREEYOPANISHAD
64
bhu or the legs, bhuvah or the hands and svaha is the head!)
Meditation to Paramatma and Antaratma as both appear to have a Five fold nature in common: I.vii.1)
Prithvyantarikshamdyaurdishovaaavantaradishaah, Agnirvaayuradityahchandramaanakshatraani,
apaoshadhayahvanaspatayaaakaashaAtamaaityadhibhutam/ Athaadhyaatmam,
Praanovyaanopaanaudaanahsamaanah, Chakshushrotram mano vaaktvak,
charmamaamsamsnaavaasthimajjaaetadadhividhyaayaRishiravochat/
Panktamvaaidamsarvampanktenaivapaanktahsprunoteeti/ (The Sages confirmed that Meditation and
Sacrifice are five fold viz. the Divine factors, natural factors, physical factors, human factors and moral
factors. The Earth,Sky, Heaven, then Primary Quarters and the secondary Placesof Existence; Fire, Air,
the Sun, theMoon and the Stars as also water, herbs, trees, and the Insrtument of Srishthi viz. Virat
Swarupa. Besides the ‘Adhi Daivika’ causation, then the Adhi Bhoutika and Adhyaatmika causes are
narrated: of these are physical and human factors; to start with the five vital forces , five sensory organs,
five senses and so on in a row or Pankti! This was what Rishis underlined: Panktamvaaidamsarvam,
panktenaivapaanktahsphrunoteeti/ (The Totality is indeed constituted by five factors in a row, one filling
up with five (external) and five (internal). Thus there are different kinds of meditation: one to
Hiranyagarbha as referred to thus far with the latter identified with ‘vyahritis’and the five entities of
Bhuh-Bhuvah-Svah-Mahah and the body trunk of Hiranyagarbha. Another type of meditation is to the
Pancha Pranas viz. Praana-Vyaana-Apaana-Udaana-Samaanas or the Vital Force performing exhaling,
pervading, inhaling, leaving the body and digesting. Yet another one is stated as ‘Pankti’ or the five feet/
five lettered ‘Chandhobhaga’ or Prosody the Vedanga devoted to poetry and prose scripting. Further
meditation is for the welfare of PanchaKarmendriyas and PanchaJnanendriyas of eyes-ears-mouth-nose
and skin and the counter part senses of vision, hearing, speech, smell and touch. The Pankti or the row of
five possessions that a father counsels to his son as the former draws nears his death and the five
possessions acquired worthy of sacrifice were his wife, sons, human wealth, divine wealth and the Self!
Essentially thus the Universe is made of PanchaBhutas or Five Gross Elements that Prajapati Himself is
all about!)
AnandoBrahmeti’: Bliss is Brahman; from bliss is originated Creation, sustained and merged! III.vi.1)
AnandoBrahmetivyajaanaat, Anandaadhyevakhalvimaanibhutaanijaayante, Anandenajaataanijeevanti,
Anandenprayantyabhisamvishyantiti, saishaa Bhargavi
Vaarunividyaa,Paramevyomamanpratitishthataa,sayaevamvedapratitisyhthati:annavaannaadobhavat,
mahaanbhavatiprajayaapashubhirbrahmavarchasena, mahaankeertyaa/(In the ultimate analysis,
Brahman is Bliss; it is from bliss that the Universe is initiated from, preserved along and terminated into!
This Ultimate Truth is realised after prolonged and intensified disclosure by Bhrigu as imparted by
Varuna Deva in several stages and layers of revelations stating from ‘Annam Paramatma’ to
‘PraanoBrahmeti’ to ‘Mano Brahmeti’ to ‘VijnaanamBrahmeti’ to finally ‘AnandoBrahmeti’!He who
realises thus is totally saturated with bliss as the unique possessor and enjoyer of the essence of food, the
best of the quality of Life, of progeny, cattle, auspiciousness, fulfillment of life and acme of glory! A step
by step revelation of Paramatma the Embodiment of Ecstacy is a process of evolution from existence of
Life supported by Food or nourishment, activised by ‘Pancha Pranas’, driven and reinforced by mental
strength, strengthened and qualified by a strong base of knowledge an finally surfeited with an enormous
mass of Ultimate Spiritual Ecstasy designated as Bliss! The analysis of Brahman is a balance of
macrocosmic complex structure of Brahman/ Paramatma made of PanchaBhutas or Five Elements,
besides the Celestial Forms of Surya-Chandra Nakshatras, Indra, Prajapati and Brahman to the
65
microcosmic mirror form of Antaraatma embodied by Nature with Panchendriyas, essence of food,
praana, manas, vijnana, topped up by Mahadananda the Brahman!)
ISHOPANISHAD
Comparative analysis of Rig-Saama Vedas as Earth, Fire, Sky, Air, Sun, Heaven, Moon, Stars,
Hiranmaya Purusha; this is on the divine plane! I.vi.4) Nakshatraanyeva Rik,
ChandramaaSaamatadetadetashyaamRichyadhyudhamvSaama, tasmaadRichiadhyudhamSaamageeyate,
nakshat-raanyevasaa, ChandramaaamastatSaama/ ( Nakshatras are stated to be Rik and Moon as
Saama; here again Saama Veda is well set up on thev Rig Veda and Saama Veda is chanted as instituted
in Rig Veda. Stars denote ‘Saa’ and ‘ama’ as Chandra, as the Ruler of the Stars thus making up as Saama)
The spiritual meanings of Saama Veda words and of mystic sounds I.xiii.1)Ayamvaavalokohaukaarah,
VaayurhaikaarahChandramaaathakaarah, aatmehakaarognireekaarah/(This World is ‘haukaara’, Vaayu
is ‘haikaara’, Chandra is ‘ athahkaara’, the Self is ‘ihakaara’ and Agni is ‘ee-kaara’. Chanting and
Meditation of Saama Veda is linked with ‘shabdas’ or sounds signifying specified Deities. In
RatnakaraSaama Veda, ‘AyamVaavalokahhaukaarah’ or this world is of ‘hau’kaara; ‘Vaayuhhaikaara’ in
VaamadwevaSaama; ‘Chandramaatahkaarah’; ‘Atmaaihakaarah’, while ‘Agni ihakaarah’. In other words,
all the Saama songs are the tributes to Elements of Nature)
Raajana Chant of Saama well set to major Divinities of Agni, Vayu, Surya, Nakshatra and Chandra
II.xx.1) Agnirhimkarah, Vaayuprastavah, Aditya Udgitah, nakshatraanipratihaarah,
Chandramaanidhanam: etadRaajanamDevataasuprotam/ (The syllable of Agni is himkara, Vaayu is
prastaavaAditya Udgita,Nakshatras are the pratihara and Chandra is Nidhana; thus all the
majorDeities are positioned to the essential parts of Saama Veda as in reference to Raajana Chant.)
[Rajana Chant is essentially directed to Divinities of significance and as such yields to the chanters all the
best of whatever is in their respective spheres of capabilities; indeed each of the Deities worshipped in the
Raajana Chant, either individually or collectively, has the ability to bestow the best of fulfillment to them,
especially long life, well being, good progeny and eminence!]
Pronounciation of Saama Chanting should be appropriate like to Agni it be highsounding, Soma be clear
and melodious, elastic to Vayu, Indra as soft but pitched up and to Prajapati as distinct and unique;
likewise vowels be strong and resonant, aspirants as open and slurless but consonants as slow and careful!
II.xxii.1) VinardiSaamnovrunepashavyamitiagnerudgithoniruktahPrajapateh, niruktahSomasya,
mrudushlakshanamVaayoh, shlakshanambalavadIndrasya, krounchamBrihaspateh,
apadhwaantamVarunasya: taanSarvaanevopasevita, Vaarunamtwaevavarjayet/ ( Now the Chanter of
66
Saama Veda proclaims that he would start singing the Veda in varying tunes and sounds: he would first
chant the Veda at a high pitch and tune which should appeal to animals; then as Udgita having Agni as its
presiding deity; then Saama as of ‘anirukta’ or a unique and indescribable tune with Prajapati as its
presiding Deity; then the ‘SomasyaUdgita’ with Chandra as the presiding Deity in ‘nirukta’ as in
clear tone melody; then the ‘mridu’ or the ‘skakshanam’ or in soft tone to Vayu Deva as the Diety
concerned; then to Indra Deva as the presiding Deity in a ‘slakshanambalvad’ or of soft yet efforted pitch
of voiceand then to Brihaspati the Deva Guru as the presiding deity in the tone of a krouncha bird. But,
normally the chanting in favour of Varuna Deva as the presiding deity is avioded as in the tune of a
cracked up sound of a gong/bell!)
Brahman as Praana,Vyaana, Apaana, Samana and Udaana governed by Surya, Chandra, Agni, Parjanya
and Akasha; the paramount Radiance of Paramatma is nowhere else but within One Self! III.xiii.1) Tasya
ha vaaetasyahridayasyapancha deva-sushayah, sayosyapraansushih: sapraanahtah- chakshuh,
saAdityah, tad etattejonnaadyamitiupaaseeta, tejasviannaadobhavatiyaevamveda/ (This heart has five
door-like openings protected by Devas. The eastern opening is Praana of the PanchaPraanas; this Praana
being the up-breathing is in the eye of the body and is governed by Surya Deva. Praana is the cause and
consequence of food and the form of well being) III.xiii.2) Athayosyadakshinahsushihsavyaanah,
tacchotram, saChandramaah, tad etacchreeesh cha
yashahchetiupaaseetashrimaanyashashvibhavatiyaevamveda/ (The southern door isVyana, the ear and
the Moon; this is meditated as prosperity and fame and involves movement and use of strength; it
controls Praana the up - breathing and the Apana or the out going or the exhaling.)
Food being a product of five organs of the Self and five creations of Brahman! IV.iii.1)
Vayurvaavasamvargah, yadaavaaagnirudvaayati, Vaayumevaapyeti,
yadaaSuryostametivaayumevaapyeti, yadaachandrostametiVaayumevaapyeti/ (Vayu is the final absorber
and the entity of merger. As Agni is extinguished it merges into Vayu; when Surya sets off it goes into
Vayu; as Chandra disappears then again it is absorbed into Vayu again; similarly any Being as
extinguished has necessarily to sucked in as Vayu!)
67
Satyakaammaiti, Bhagavah, iti ha pratishu –shrava/ (Now, Agni Deva conveyed to Satyakaama that soon
a Hamsa / Swan would converse with him about the glory of the Brahman’s first foot: the Swan exactly
repeated as conveyed by Agni viz that when the Sun would rise the cattle were taken out, and at the
Sunset they were brought back home when the faggots were fetched and the fire was lit up as he would be
seated near the Fire facing East!Then the Swan would accost Satyakaama and the later would wait for the
swan’s reply!)
Agni a Swan conveyed to Satyakaama that Agni-Surya- Chandra and Vidyut comprised of Brahman’s
single foot of manifested Universe! IV.vii.1-2) Hamsastepaadamvakteti, sa ha
shobhutegaaabhiprasthaapayaamchakaara, taayatraabhi-saayambabhuvuhu,
tatraagnuimupasamaadhyaaya, gauparudhya, samidhamaadhaayapaschaadagnehpraanupopavivesha//
Tam hamsaupanipatyaabhyuvaada, Satyakaammaiti, Bhagavah, iti ha pratishu –shrava/ (Now, Agni
Deva conveyed to Satyakaama that soon a Hamsa / Swan would converse with him about the glory of the
Brahman’s first foot: the Swan exactly repeated as conveyed by Agni viz that when the Sun would rise
the cattle were taken out, and at the Sunset they were brought back home when the faggots were fetched
and the fire was lit up as he would be seated near the Fire facing East!Then the Swan would accost
Satyakaama and the later would wait for the swan’s reply!) IV.vii.3) Brahmanaah, Saumya,
tepaadambravaniiti, braveetu me bhagavan, iti, tasmaihovaachaagnihkalaa, Suryahkalaa,
Chandrahkalaa, Vidyut kalaaeshavaiSaumya, chathushkalaa, paadoBrahmanojyotishmaannaama/ The
Swan would declare about a quarter of Brahman to Satyakama as follows : Agni is one part, Surya is
another, another too and finally Vidyut or Lightnings yet another- thus Brahman’s single ‘paada’ is a
huge lump of effulgence and glory. By now Satyakaama would be able to guess that the Swan was Surya
himself!) IV.vii.4) Sa yaetamevamidwaamschatus kalam paadamBrahmanojyotishmaanitiupaste,
jyotishmaanbasmimillokebhagvati,jyotishmato ha
lokaanjayatiyaetamevamvidwaamschatushkalaampaadaanBrahmanojyotishmaan, itiupaste/ (A Vidwaan
whosoever absorbs this knowledge about only one of the four feet of Brahman, would fulfill himself with
the Utmost Brighteness of this and meditation of that single foot would by itself secure him Supreme
Bliss!)
The fame of Anvaharya Agni protects the person who executes it and of the next generations too
IV.xii.1-2) Athahainamanvaaharyapachanonushashaasa:
aapodishonakshatraanichandramaaiti,yaeshchamndramasipurushodrushyatesohamasmisdaevaahamasm
eeti// Sa yaetamevamVidwaanupaastepahatepaapakrityaamlokeebhavati, sarvamaayureti, jyogjeevati,
naashyaavarapurushahksheeyante, upavayam tam bhunjaamosmimschalokemushmimscha,
yaetamevamVidwaanupaaste/ The ‘Anvaharaagni’ or the Dakshinaagni instructed Satyakama that
AapahorWater, Dishah or the Directions, Chandra or the Moon and Nakshatra or the Stars are all the
forms of Brahman and the unified beneficiaries are in the groups of AnvahaniyaPachanaanna and
Chandra while Warer and Nakshatras are of common identity. The person who is viewed in Chandra is
indeed Brahman himself/ The Vidwan who is aware of there facts and meditates on the Anvaharaagni is
protected fromk all sinful deeds, becomes a resident of Agni loka, and enjoys life and those of his
generations as well!)
68
Purushomaanavah, saenam Brahma gamayati, esha Deva patho Brahma pathah, etenapratipadya -
maanaa imam maanavamaavartannaavartantaiti,naavartantaiti/ (Now, the path of Brahma is being
described: as one’s departure of life is followed by last rites or not, that person reaches extraordiary
illumination. From that light, he goes to a day of brightness, from the day to a fortnight of brilliance,
followed by fortnights onward to the six months during which Sun travels north, then to a year, from
where to the Sun, from the Sun to Moon from the Moon to Lightning.Since there is no other opening,
there would be Deva Yaana or the Divine Path leading to a ‘PurushahAmaanavah’ or a Maha Purusha
who takes the Soul to Brahma and that indeed is the Brahma Loka. Having reached there is no return till
the spin of that Manvantara!)
Deva Yaana or the Divine Path versus SaamaanyaYaana or the Route of Commoners after death; cautions
for do’s and don’t’s in active lifeV.x.1-2) Tadyaitthamviduh, ye chemeranyeshraaddha tapa
itiupaaste,terchishamabhisambhavavanti, archishohah, ahnaaapuryamanaapaksham,
aapuryamaanaapakshadyaan shad udaannetimaasaamstaan// Maasebhyahsamvatsaram,
samvatsaraadAdityam, Adityaacchandramasam, tat purushomaanavah, saenaan Brahma gamayati, esha
Deva Yaanahpanthaaiti/ ( There is a distinction of those who leave the world after practising Dharma in
the true sense with faith, commitment, austerity and performance of Sacrifices to the Deity of Flames;
such of the few, who realise by them-selves from the power of Agni tend to be guided to reach the day
light to Shukla Paksha to Uttarayana when Surya travels upward to north to a year to Surya Loka and to
Chandra Loka . V.x.3) Athayaimegraamaistapurtedattamitiupaasate, tedhumamabhisambhavanti,
dhumaadraatrim, raatreraparapakshamaparapakshaadyaan shad dakshinaitimaasaamstaan,
naitesamvatsaramabhipraapnuvanti/( However, there are other types of the run of the mill kind of
villagers etc. who too no doubt follow a fairly virtuous life of ‘daana dharma vidhana’ and occasionally
Vrata, Sacrifices and so on and as their average or medium life ends up in death, they pass into hazy
smoke zone, from smoke to dark nights, from there to Krishna Paksha to bi-yearly Seasons of
inconveniences when Sun travels ‘Dakshinaayana’ or South Bound when some Deities move in groups in
the ‘Shad maasaan’ period usually disposed off in less than a year ripe and ready for rebirth as per the
intensity of karma phala!) V.x.4) Maasebhyahpitrulokam, pitrulokaadaaaasham, akaashatchandra –
masam, eshaSomoraaja, tad Devaanaamannam, tam deva bhakshyniti/ (When reference is made to
months of death of a person, the Individual Self or the Soul travels from the months to PitruLoka or the
World of Manes; from there to Antariksha or the Intermediate Space to where King Soma offers Soma
or Amrita as per the fruits of ‘karma’ in the prescribed time frame work.) V.x.5) Tasmin
yaavatsampaatamushitvathaitamevaadhvaanampunarnivartanteyathetamaakaasham,
aakaashaadvaayum, vaayurbhutwaadhumobhavati, dhumobhutwaabrambhavati/( Once ‘yaavatsampaata’
or the exhaustion of the fruits of virtue is over, then the Self would return by the very route that he
travelled herebefore after the death. He would return to the Intermediate space of Akasha then to Vayu,
then to dhuma or smoke and then back to the white cloud) V.x.6)
Abhrambhutwaameghobhavatimeghobhutwaapravarshatitaihaveehiyavaaoshadhivanaspatyahtila-
maashaitijaayant, atovaikhaludurnisprapataram, yoyohyannamattiyoretaahsinchati, tad
bhuyaevabhavati/(In the further travel of the Soul from white clouds to thick black clouds to rains, the
same is born as paddy, barley, herbs, sesmum, black pulses and so on. Now, the release of the concerned
paddy or pulse is also destined as per the time of its release from the shell to kernel; similarly the cycle of
food intake from an insect to a bird or to a reptile to an animal or human being is destined likewise)
V.x.7) Tad yaiharamaneeyacharanaah, abyaasho ha yatteramaneeyaamyonimaapadyeran, Brahmana
69
yonimvaakshatriyaayonimvaa, Vaishya
yonimvaa;athayaihakapuyacharanaahabhyashyattekapuyaamyonimapadyeran shwa yoni
vaashkarayonimvaachandalayonimvaa/(Among human beings, depending on the merit or otherwise of
their erstwhile acts in previous accounts, one might be born as a Brahmana, or a Kshatriya, a Vaishya or
of lower classes and in the event of accounts of demerit, the Soul might as well be born as a dog, a pig or
so.) V.x.8) Athaitaohpathornakatarena cha nataanimaanikhudraaniasakrudaavarteenibhutaanibhavanti,
jaayasva, mriyasveti, etattriteeyamsthaanamtenaasaulokonasampuryate, tasmaajjugupseta,
tadeshashlokah/ ( As a last resort, Souls of no consequence are born in a tertiary status, transmigrating
from birth to birth as per saying of ‘be born and die’so that the other worlds are not overcrowded.
Recalling the five questions posed by Pravahana to Svetaketu and Gautama ( reference V.iii.1-4), the first
question regarding the Nothern and Southern Paths or of Deva Yaana and SaamanyaYaana is being
clarified as above. Indeed, the course of transmigration of Souls is not only complicated and
incomprehensible but is fraught with insurmountable difficulties at every stage of self-existence and
survial. Indeed there is a verse that sounds alarming signals to humanity cautioning them of grave pitfalls
to refrain from and reminding them of five fires and of moral rectitude!) V.x.9)
Sthenohiranyasyasuraampibhascha, Gurostalpamaavasan Brahma haachaetepatanichatvaarah,
panchamahchaaramstaih/ ( Stealing gold, drinking wine, sharing the bed of on one’s Guru and his wife
and killing a Brahmana and keeping company of the concerned perpetrators of these sins either directly or
indirectly are certain to be thrown into the abysmal sins!) V.x.10) Atha ha yaetanevampanchaagnimveda,
nasahatairapiaacharanpaapmaanaalipyate, shuddhahputah punya lokobhavati, yaevamvedayaevamveda!
(On the other hand, who ever knows of and practises the ‘Panchaagni Vidya’ or even keeps company
with such of them, is far beyond the realms of sins and is qualified for dwellings in the worlds of virtue!
Indeed this is so and is certainly so!)
The three folded Development explained further as Agni-Aapas-Prithvi and of three basic colours of red-
white and black all emerging from and submerging into Oneness!
70
red colour of Surya is also of the colour of Agni; that of its white colour is of water and that which that is
of black colour is of Earth; the Sunhood, the Moonhood and the Earthhood are only as per variations of
speech and thought, but indeed those which are true are the three colours only!
AITEREYA UPANISHAD
Various Devas entered respective stations like Agni in mouth’s Speech; Vyayu as nose’s Praana; Surya
in Vision and Eyes; Dishas as ears and hearing;Vanaspati in skins and touch; Chandra in
heart;Mrityu in Out Breath and Jala Deva as excretions and progeny!) I.ii.4)
Agnirvaakbhutwaamukhampraavishad, Vaayuhpraanobhutwaanaashikepravishad,
Adityahchakshurbhutwaakshinipravishad, Dishahshrotrambhutwaakarnoupraavishann,
AoushadhivanaspatayolomaanibhutwaatwaschampraavishaamshChandramaa Mano
bhutwaaahridayampraavishan, Mriyurapaanobhutwaanaabhimpraavishad,
aaporetobhutwaashishnampraavishan/ (Agni Deva entered the mouth of the Beings in the form of Voice
or Speech; Vayu Deva made his entry into the nostrils and not only as Praana or Life but also as the
capacity to smell; Surya Deva entered the eyes and afforded vision or the sense of sight; Dasha Disha
Deva or the Lord of Directions entered the ears and bestowed the sense of hearing; Vanaspati Deva or the
Lord of herbs, plants and trees entered the pores of skin and hairs and granted the sense of ‘sparasha
jnana’ or that of touch and absorbing power; Chandra Deva firmly entered into the heart and mind to
control the psyche and of reactive mode of behaviour; Mrityu Deva the God of Death enterd the navel
in the form of Apaana or the compressed air which indeed is the control of Life Force and of out-breath.
And finally Jala Deva or the God of Water, as also of the urge of urination of the generative organ and
passion that results in the discharge of semen through it.)
KAUSHEETAKI UPANISHAD
Worship of Surya to eradicate sins and Chandra for life’s success and wealth
71
II.8:
Athamaasimaasiamaavaasyaayamvrittaayaampashchaachandramaasamdrishyamaanaamupatishthetaita
yaivaavritaaharita trine vaapratyasyati, yan me susheemamhridayamdivichandra -
masishritammanyehammaam tad vidvaamsammaahamputryamaghamrudamiti,
nahyasmaatpurvaahprajaahpraititi nu
jaataputrasyatathaajataputrasyaapyaasvasametutesamtepaayaamsi u yantuvaajaa yam
aadityaaamshumaapyaayayanteeti,
etaastisraarichojapvitvaamaasmaakampranenaprajayaapashubhiraapyaayayishthaahyosmaandveshti
yam cha
vayamdvishmastasyapraanenaprajayaapashubhiraapyaayayasvaaindreemaavartamaavartaadityaasyaavr
itamanaavratitidakshinambaahumanvaavartate/
(As the new Moon is seen on the western Sky, that is on Amaavasya at the end of the Krishna Paksha or
the dark phase, individual needs to throw two blades of green grass and offer his prayers stating: may my
heart rest on the bright Moon and bestow its grace to abandon all my worries for the welfare of my
children; may I be granted to increase my vigour so that abundance of milk and food be gathered even to
gladden the heart of Aditya too -the inference here being that while bis the female partner of Surya the
Agni being the husband; may as a result of such abundance of food and milk faciltate my vigour too to
enable me to acquire further progeny and alongside may my family acquire further cattle too to support
the enhanced size of the family! Thus the individual prays Chandra in Rig Veda verses repeatedly further
stating that there should not be stress on the ‘praana’ or the vital force of either his or of his children or
even his cattle even. Thus having prayed to Chandra, the individual turns to pray to Indra and Surya)
II.9: Athapournamaasyaampurastaacchandramaasamdrishyamaanamupatishthetaetayaavaavritaa,
Somoraajaasivichakshanah, panchamukhosiprajaapatirbraahmanaas ta
ekammukhamtenamukhenaraajnotsi, tenamukhenamaamannaadam kuru, raajaa ta ekammukham,
tenamukhenavishnotsi, tenamukhenamaamannaadam kuru, shyenastaekammukham, tenamukhena maa
pakshinotsi, tenamukhenamaamannadam kuru
agnishtaekammukhamtenemamlokamatsitenamukhenamaamannadam kuru, tvayipanchamammukham,
tenamukhenasarvambhutaaniatsi, tenamukhenamaamannadam kuru,
maasmaakampraanenaprajayaapashubhiravaksheshthaayosmaandveshtiyacchavayamdvishmastasyapraa
nenaprajayaapashubhiravaksheeyasveti,
daivamaavartamaavartaadityasyaavritamanvaavartaitidakshinambaahumavaavartate/
(As one worships Chandra Deva on the night of the full Moon, as it appears in the East of the horizon,
the worship would be similar as above. Further, the prayer should state: Chandra Deva, you are the King
Soma as the PanchaMukha Brahma the Lord of Creation! Brahmana is of one mouth of yours. With that
mouth you eat the Kings; with that mouth you make me an eater of food. The King is another mouth and
with that mouth you sustain and feed the Subjects of the King. It is with that mouth he makes me viz. this
as the worshipping of the Individual too. Now the hawk too is one mouth of yours and with that mouth,
you eat birds. It is with that mouth that he makes the worshipper an Individual. Agni is another mouth of
Brahma with which the whole world is eaten from. Lord Brahma! Within You is the Fifth mouth! We
request you, Lord Brahma! not to waste away the vital breath as that sustains us, our offspring and our
cattle. Apparently the inference in this stanza is about the ‘Varnaashrama’of Brahmana, Kshatriyas and
72
others! Now, having prayed thus the Individual who worships Surya Deva foremost and then Chandra
Deva now, where he turns towards Devas for veneration)
Worship of Surya to eradicate sins and Chandra for life’s success and wealth
(Maharshi Kausitaki performs three ‘DainikaSuryopaasanas’ or daily venerations to Surya Deva to root
out his sins to the rising Sun at the early mornings, mid day Sun and the Sunsets; he would each time
perform the investiture with his ‘Yajnopaveetam’ or the Sacred Thread, having fetched water in a vessel
and sprinkling it on his head and body and recite the following relevant mantras at the Sun rise, mid Sky
Sun and Sunset respectively: Vargosipaapmaanaam me vridhiti; udvargosipaamaanaam ma udvrin -
dheeti, samvargosipaapmaanaam me samvtiddhanti/ or Pratahkaala Surya Deva! Deliver me from my
sins; Aparaahna Surya Deva! Do deliver me from my sins; Saayam Surya Deva! Do kindly absolve me
from my sins of the day and night. As thus recommended by the Maharshi, three daily homages as
prescribed are sure to absolve his sins of the day on a recurring basis!)
II.8:
Athamaasimaasiamaavaasyaayamvrittaayaampashchaachandramaasamdrishyamaanaamupatishthetaita
yaivaavritaaharita trine vaapratyasyati, yan me susheemamhridayamdivichandra -
masishritammanyehammaam tad vidvaamsammaahamputryamaghamrudamiti,
nahyasmaatpurvaahprajaahpraititi nu
jaataputrasyatathaajataputrasyaapyaasvasametutesamtepaayaamsi u yantuvaajaa yam
aadityaaamshumaapyaayayanteeti,
etaastisraarichojapvitvaamaasmaakampranenaprajayaapashubhiraapyaayayishthaahyosmaandveshti
yam cha
vayamdvishmastasyapraanenaprajayaapashubhiraapyaayayasvaaindreemaavartamaavartaadityaasyaavr
itamanaavratitidakshinambaahumanvaavartate/
(As the new Moon is seen on the western Sky, that is on Amaavasya at the end of the Krishna Paksha or
the dark phase, individual needs to throw two blades of green grass and offer his prayers stating: may my
heart rest on the bright Moon and bestow its grace to abandon all my worries for the welfare of my
children; may I be granted to increase my vigour so that abundance of milk and food be gathered even to
gladden the heart of Aditya too -the inference here being that while Chandra is the female partner of
Surya the Agni being the husband; may as a result of such abundance of food and milk faciltate my
vigour too to enable me to acquire further progeny and alongside may my family acquire further cattle too
to support the enhanced size of the family! Thus the individual prays Chandra in Rig Veda verses
repeatedly further stating that there should not be stress on the ‘praana’ or the vital force of either his or of
his children or even his cattle even. Thus having prayed to Chandra, the individual turns to pray to Indra
and Surya)
73
II.9: Athapournamaasyaampurastaacchandramaasamdrishyamaanamupatishthetaetayaavaavritaa,
Somoraajaasivichakshanah, panchamukhosiprajaapatirbraahmanaas ta
ekammukhamtenamukhenaraajnotsi, tenamukhenamaamannaadam kuru, raajaa ta ekammukham,
tenamukhenavishnotsi, tenamukhenamaamannaadam kuru, shyenastaekammukham, tenamukhena maa
pakshinotsi, tenamukhenamaamannadam kuru
agnishtaekammukhamtenemamlokamatsitenamukhenamaamannadam kuru, tvayipanchamammukham,
tenamukhenasarvambhutaaniatsi, tenamukhenamaamannadam kuru,
maasmaakampraanenaprajayaapashubhiravaksheshthaayosmaandveshtiyacchavayamdvishmastasyapraa
nenaprajayaapashubhiravaksheeyasveti,
daivamaavartamaavartaadityasyaavritamanvaavartaitidakshinambaahumavaavartate/
(As one worships Chandra Deva on the night of the full Moon, as it appears in the East of the horizon,
the worship would be similar as above. Further, the prayer should state: Chandra Deva, you are the King
Soma as the PanchaMukha Brahma the Lord of Creation! Brahmana is of one mouth of yours. With that
mouth you eat the Kings; with that mouth you make me an eater of food. The King is another mouth and
with that mouth you sustain and feed the Subjects of the King. It is with that mouth he makes me viz. this
as the worshipping of the Individual too. Now the hawk too is one mouth of yours and with that mouth,
you eat birds. It is with that mouth that he makes the worshipper an Individual. Agni is another mouth of
Brahma with which the whole world is eaten from. Lord Brahma! Within You is the Fifth mouth! We
request you, Lord Brahma! not to waste away the vital breath as that sustains us, our offspring and our
cattle. Apparently the inference in this stanza is about the ‘Varnaashrama’of Brahmana, Kshatriyas and
others! Now, having prayed thus the Individual who worships Surya Deva foremost and then
Chandra Deva now, where he turns towards Devas for veneration)
74
evasamuttashhautaavaaetahsraadevataahpraanenihshreyasamviditvaapraanamevaprajnaatmaanamabhis
ambhuyasahaivaiaihsarvairasmaacchareeraaducchakramuhsavaayupravishtaaaakaashaatmaasvareti, sa
tad gacchatiyatraitedevaas tat praapya yad amritaadevaas tad amritobhavatiyaevamvadam/ ( As to the
process of exiting life from the body of an individual being, the significance of organs and their
correponding senses comes under discussion; as the body lies like a log of wood, then speech asserted its
importance and vision as enabled by the eyes claimed its definitive role too. Then ears and the capacity to
enabe hearing too is felt in the process of revival of life. Now the individual would have felt that he could
not speak, see and hear. Then mind followed suit enabling the abilities of speech, vision and the potential
of hearing once the body gets revived. The climactic effect is felt as a shocker to the abilities of speech,
vision, hearing and thinking when Praana the vital Energy enters; indeed all other capabilities would
have been put to nought otherwise and hence the highest and unique contribution made by the vital
Energy, being the undisputed leader of all ! Not only the organs and senses of the body of an individual,
but the concerned divinities like Surya for vision, Antariksha and Vayu for hearing, Brihaspati for
speech, and Chandra for mind too surrendered to Brahma Deva for his ‘nihshreyasham’ or highest
excellence and prostrateted in homage as indeed He is the highest of all as the embodiment of Vital
Energy.
(Indeed an intelligent person should meditate on ‘ukta’ to the breathing energy which controls and
sustains all the organs and senses since as one normally finds a possible defect in any specific organ it is
the problem of adequate supply of the vital energy; one finds across a dumb person as he is deprived of
the ability of speech; a blind person suffers from the absence of eyes resuting in the lack of vision; a deaf
person is disabled to hear as his ears are non-functional; a mad person suffers from the defect of mind and
thus behaves oddly; similarly the shortcoming of arms or legs disables body movements. In all these
cases, adequate resource of vital energy and the breathing spirit falls short. Again, when a person is so
asleep that he sees no dreams then he becomes one with that breathing spirit alone. Then speech with all
sounds gets absorbed and so do the eyes and ears while mind with all the thoughts is shrunk into itself. As
soon as the individual wakes up, the vital energy sparks off like blazing fire to reactivate al the organs
75
and senses as usual and invoke the respective deities like Surya the source of vision, Vayu the
individual breathing process quite apart from the Universal Energy anyway, Chandra the mind,
Antariksha the ears and the sense of hearing and of reaction to sounds and so on. Thus the internal
breathing energy alerts the individual to revitalise and wake off from the sleep.To prove this point of
sleep stage, a sick person nearing death falls into the state of unconsciousness when the physical senses
slow down although the fundamental vital energy too slows down the flow of Universal Energy into the
branch of the individual energy even as the abilities of vision, speech, hearing, touch, smell and body
movement get affected and as finally the control of mind and brain power slows down and the link of the
internal flow of vital energy gets terminated from the Universal Energy that what Indra Deva is!
MUNDAKOPANISHAD
76
their directives as per His nods! Svetashvatara Upanishad VI.14 quotes precisely the same as: Na
tatraSuryobhaatina Chandra Taarakam----vibhati/ Also, Kathopanishad vide II.ii.11 is relevant:
Suryoyathaasarvalokasyachakshurnalipyatechaakshusaihbaahyadoshaih, ekastathaasarvabhutaantra -
taatmaanalipyatelokadhukhenaBrahhmaah/ or thec Self is least unaffected by the sorrows of Beings just
as the Sun-the eye of the Universe is totally unaffected by the natural calamities and rejoicings in the
world; the super imposition of the illnesses or the wellness of the body is hardly a matter of concern to the
Self. Bhagavad Gita’s Fifteenth Chapter on Purusha Prapti Yoga Stanza 6 is also quoted in this context:
Na tadbhaasateSuryonaShashankonaPaavakahyadgatvaanavivartantetaddhhaamaparamam mama/ or
That Paramapada Status or the Supreme Position of Brahman cannot be signified by that of Surya,
Chandra or Agni as Paramatma is Swayam Prakasha or Self Illuminated. Once that Status is
accomplished, then there is no return as that indeed is His Abode!
PRASHNOPANISHAD
( Praana the Life Force is Surya and Food is Chandra. Food or Matter and Life’s Energy in gross or
‘Murtam’and subtle or ‘Amurtam’ forms in physical and cosmic senses respectively interact with each
other and sustain the cycle of existence. Be that as it may, Aditya while rising enters in the Eastern
direction and enables absorbtion of its rays into all the Beings in the East while as He illumines all the
other sides of the South, the West, the North , -as also below, above and the Antariksha, providing shine
and heat by his rays to all the living Beings. Surya is Life in several forms assuming an alternate form of
Agni too ; after all Vaishvanara too is stated as the core and concentrate of all living Beings just as
Vishvarupa is the essence of the totality of the Cosmic World. Thus the ones seeking to realise Brahman
do realise that ‘Vishvarupam’ or Surya is ‘harinam’ or of myriad forms, ‘jatavedasam’ or the
embodiment of enlightenment, ‘parayanam’ or the final resort of all Beings, ‘ekamjyoti or the Singular
Illumination of the Universe, ‘tapantam’ or the unique source of heat and radiation, and ‘sahasrarashmih’
or of thousand rays, and of ‘pranahprajaanaam’ or Life Energy of the infinite Beings)
Two courses destined for Beings - the Southern and the Northern Paths in terms of Dakshina-
Uttarayanas1.9-10) SamvatsarovaiPrajapatih, tasyaayanedakshinachottaramcha, tad yehavai tad
ishtapurtekritamitiupaasate, techaandramasamevalokamabhijayante, ta
evapunaraavartantetasmaadeteRishayahprajaakaamadakshinampratipadyante, esha ha vairayir yah
pitraayanah//
Ahtottarenatapasaabrahmacharyanashraddhaayavidyayaatmaanamanvishyaadityamabhijante,
etadvaipraanaanaamaayatanametadamritamabhayam,etadparaayanam,etamaannapunaraavartant,
ityeshanirodhah, adeshashlokah// (In each Samvatsara or a year there are two ‘Ayanaas’- the
Dakshinayana and the Uttaraayana. Of these, the Lunar and Solar Tithis occur of which Purnima and
Amavasya or the Full Moon and No Moon occur too. It is in the Southern Course that virtuous
77
Brahmanas perform beneficient ‘Karma’ by way of Sacrifices and Acts meant for Public Good , seek to
win favours of Chandra Deva and attain Swarga Loka after life as also excellent posperity and progeny
now and rebirth; the Southern Path also bestows blessings of Pitru Devatas whose course is plentiful food
and fulfillment in the series of births. Mundaka Upanishad vide I.ii.10 is quoted:
IshtaapurtammanyamaanaavarishtamnaanyachreyoVedayantepramuudhaah,
naakasyaprushthetesukrutenubhutvemamlokamheenataramlokamvaavishanti/ or those persons who are
saturated by Sacrifices and Rituals as per what Vedas and other Scriptures imply and impress and attain
reliefs of what ever is destined by the balance of merits and demerits and as soon as the account of fruits
is over return back to the cycle of rebirths.Thus the Southern Path is attained by the virtuous ‘karma
phala’. This is stated to be achieved either for ‘ istha’ or ‘purta’ or one’s own benefit or for public good.
The ‘ishta’ is : Agnihotram tapas satyamvedaanaamupalambhanam, atithyamvaishvadevam cha
ishtamitiabhidheeyate or to perform Fire sacrifices, meditation, truthfullness, Vedic rituals are all for the
Self Fullfillment. On the other hand the Public Good deeds are: Vaapikuupatataakaadidevataayaatanaani
cha, anna pradaanamaaraamahpoortamitiabhidheeyate/ such as digging streams, wells and water flows,
donations of way side choultries for yatris, and ‘Anna daanaas’ to the have nots and Atithis are meant for
Social Welfare. ‘Athottarena’ or as regards the Northern Course, the acts that one is expected of would be
of more arduous nature: ‘ Tapasaabrahmacheryenashraddhayaa vidya yaaabhijaayanteAdityam’ or by way
of observing celibacy, intense faith and tolerance, vidyaayaa or acquisition of Scriptural Knowledge, and
intense meditation ad introspection only that one could achieve and so on are the essential inputs to attain
Aditya along the Northern Course. ‘Etatvaiaayatanaampraanam, etadamritamabhayam,
etadparaayanam, etatsmaannapuraraavartanteitikritam/ or that indeed is the final resort of
PanchaPraanas and the sensory organs inluding mind; that is also the Abode of Indestructability,
Fearlessness and the Supreme Goal from where none returns. It is indeeed that is clearly the distinction of
the Southern and the Northern Courses. )
MAHA NARAYANOPANISHAD
78
[Shri Sukta: Harih Om/ Hiranyavarnaamharinimsuvarnarajatasrujaam,
ChandraahiranyamaheemLakshmimjatavdo ma aa vaha/ --- Aardhraam push-
karinimpushtimpinglaampadmamaali-nimChandraamhiranya-mayimLakshmimjaat-vedo ma aavah --
VainateSomampibaSomampibatuvrutra-haaSomamdhana-asyaSominomahyamdadaatuSominaha/ Aum
Sri Mahaa-KaaliMahaa-Lakshmi Mahaa-SaraswatiTrigunaatmikaaChandikaayenamah/
Agni Deva! we invoke you for Devi Maha Lakshmi who is resplendent with golden jewellery of glitering
yellow and silver glows as Chandra the personification of wealth. Agni Deva, through your grace, may
Devi Lakshmi provide as prosperity, excellent progeny, cattle and auspiciousness. You possess ‘Chandra
Prabhasa’or the tranquility of Moon and the radiance of a far reaching repute in the worlds as the Seat
of Prosperity, as a Padmini; we all surrender as being the antithesis of Alakshmi and being the Singular
High Seat of Opulence! (13-14) Our invocation to Maha Lakshmi via Agni Deva! She is of the
tranquility of Chandra, luster of gold, brilliance of Bhaskara, the symbol of fragrance!]
MAITRI UPANISHAD
Chapter Six: 8.
79
16. Vigrahavaaneshakaalahsindhuraajahprajaanaam, esha tat
sthatahsavitaakhyoyasmaadevemechandrarakshah-grahasamvatsaraadayahsuunante,
athaibhyahsarvamidamatravaayatkinchitshubhaadrushyentahloke tad etebhyas ,
tasmaadaadityaatmaabrahmaathakaalasamjnaanam
Aadityamupaashitaadityobrahmetyekathaevam hi
aaha/Hotaabhoktaahavirmantroyagjnovishnuhprajaapatih,
sarvahkaschitprabhuhsaaksheeyomushminbhaatimandale/ Kaalamaana is like the never drying Oceans as
regulated by Savitur from whom Bhaskara emerged as also Chandra, Nakshatra mandali, and the
planets and ‘ samvatasaras’ or years too. Indeed from Savitur the aspects of virtue and vice too were
caused. Thus the Self of the Surya Deva is the reflection of Paramatma; indeed he is also the ‘bhokta’ and
‘bhukta’ or the enjoyer and the offerer of sacrificer- the Hota and the Yagna phala in the forms of the
homakaryaa-the mantra reciter-Vishnu and Prajapati too is the unique Brahman whose witness is Aditya.
38.Agnihotram juhvaanolobhajaalambhinatti,
athasammohamchitvaanakrodhaanstunvaaahkaamamabhidyaayamaanas tatas
chaturjaajambrahmakoshambhindad, atah param
aakaashamatrahisauraasowmaagneyasaattvikaanimandalaanibhitvaatatahshuddhahsatvaantarastham,
achalam, amritam, achyutam, dhruvam, vishnu-
samjnaanitamsarvaaparamdhaamasatyakaamasarvagjnaatvasamyuktam, svatantram, chatanyam,
svemaheemnitishthamaanampashyatiatrodhaaharanti: Ravi madhyesthitahsomah soma
madhyehutaasanahtejomadhyesthitamsattvamsattvamsatvamadhyesthitochyutah/
Shareerapraadeshaangushthamaatramanorapianvayamdhyaat -vaatahparamataamgacchati,
atrahisarvekaamahsamaahitaaitiatrodaaharanti;
angushthapraadeshashariramaarampradipaprataapvaatdvistridhaahi, tad
brahmaabhishtuuyamaanammaho devo bhuvanaaniaavishesha/ Aumnamobrahmanenamah/ Who so ever
executes agnihotra sacrifice is normally devoid of anger and selfishness. Further he also could severe
through the four sheaths of Brahma viz. manas, buddhi, ahamkaara, and chitta- all comprising
antahkarana.. Clearance of ‘antahkerana’ this should elevate the person concerned to heights of space that
should reach Suryaloka, Chandra loka, Agni loka, and further to cleanse his self and blesses to imbibe
the Jnaana of the stable, immortal, indestructible Vishnu loka to accomplish glory. Thus indeed that the in
the midst of Surya , Chandra and Agni is the angushthamaatra or of the thumb sized span of heart
and herein the Supreme Self amid radiant splendour whom Brahma the eternal master craftsman
prostrates. Indeed ‘Aum’ prostrates too.
TAITTIREEYA AARANYAKA -
[Chandra is known as Soma, the juice or sap of the plants and vegetation apart from being a Graha or
planet described as young, two-armed with a club and a lotus in his hands, riding a chariot pulled by ten
white horses -or an antelope - asRajanipati ( the Lord of night), Indu (the bright drop) and Kshuparaka
illuminating nights. As Soma, Chandra presides over Somvar or Monday. Worshipping Chandra on
Mondays is very effective as it grants one`s prayer. Chandra is fertility promoter since the dews that fall
on plants overnight give life, thus prayed for progeny besides relief from sorrows and mental afflictions.
Sages and devotees invoke the Goddess mother in Chandra and meditate for hours.]
80
Anuvaaka 11-1 to 5: Pavitravantahparivaajamaasatepitaaeshaampatnobhirakshativratam,
mahahsamudramvarunahstirodadhedheeraa it shokuhdharuneshuaarambham/
PavitramtevitatamBrahmanahspatemprabhurgaatraaniparyeshivishvatahataptatanuuhnatadaamoashnute
shrutaasitivahantah tat shamaashat/ ( The purifiers are seated pronouncing powerful words; the Father
of the purifiers is Soma protecting the acts of the Purifiers like Yakshas. Both Soma and Varuna uphold
the power of letting the Purifiers to rise to task of purification of the Soma juice and after straining it
enable to let the human system absorb the panchendriyas and heart with enlightenment and joy. The
human physical system may not be prepared to readily absorb the concentrate of the blissful Soma juice
and might even shake up violently to withstand the intake; the heat of absorption tends to torment the
agony and requires considerable physical and more importatly the mental strength from the shocks as the
human system was so far used to worldly afflictions and almost daily tribulations. Stanza 3 analyses that
Soma is like Brahma among Devas, the Maharshi among the Sages, buffalo among animals, Hamsa
among falcons, an axe among trees; the recipients of Soma Juice are distinguished likewise!; moreover
Soma crosses the purifier while vibrations of sound waves in the process of absorption of the Soma Juice
into the concerned physical systems of the species as referred. The next stanza registers Sapta Rishis viz.
Bharadvaaja, Kashyapa, Goutama, Ari -Bhauma, Vishvamitra, Vashishtha, and Jamadagni as clarified in
Rig Veda vide 10-137; these Sapta Rishis as qualified after performing yagjnasrealised the true chasm of
‘Asat’ or the Maya Mithya and the ‘Sat’ or the Absolute Truth. The last stanza under reference places on
record the significant contribution of Maharshi Shyaavashva who qualified himself to receive Soma Juice
by total vairagya or renunciation -and vairagya alone! [ The above stanzas of TaittireeyaAaranyaka are
mere repeats of Rig Veda viz. 9.73.3; 9.83.1; 9.96.6; 10-137 respectively]
b) BASICS OF ASTRONOMY:
Rotation of Earth: While Earth rotates on its own axis, Moon rotates around Earth and Earth rotates
Moon as also around Sun too. These rotations are in perfect kaalamaana the time cycle of the
Days-weeks-months-years and so on.
Manu Smriri - 64-74 of Aachara Khanda is quoted: Nimeshaadashachaashtou cha
kashthaatrishatutaahKalaa, Trishatkalaamuhurtahsyadahoraatramtutaavatah/
AhoraatrevibhajaneSuryomaanushamaanushadaivike,
Raatriswatnaayabhutaanaamcheshtaayaikarmanaamahah/
Piitreraatrahanomaasahpravibhagastupakshayoh,
Karmacheshtaaswahahkrishnahshuklahswapnaayasharvari/
Daiveraatryhanivarshapravibhagastayohpunah, ahastadrodagayanamraatrahsyaaddakshinaayanam/
Braahmasyatukshapaahasyayatpramaanamsamaasatah, aikakashoyugaanaamtukramashastannibodhata/
Chatvaaryahumsahasraanivarshaanamtatkrutamyugam,Tasyataavacchatisandhyaasandyashaschatayaavi
dhah/Itareshusandhyeshusasandhyeshu cha trishu, ekapaayenavartantesahasraanishataanicha/
Yadetparisankhyatmaadaavevachaturyugam, EtaddwaadashasaahastramDevaanaamyugamuchyate/
Daivikaanaamyugaanaantusahasramparisankhyayaa,Braahmamekamaharjneyamtaavateemraatrimeva
cha/
TadvaiyugasahasraantamBraahmaampunyamahaviduh,Raatrimchataavateemevatehoraatravidojanaah/
Tasya so -ahanirshasyaanteprasuptahpratimuchyate,pratibuddhaschasrijatimanahsadasaatmakam/ ( At
the time of Srishti, the Time Schedule as reckoned was as follows: the flap an eye- blink is known as a
nimesha; 18 such blinks make a kaashtha, three such kashthas make one kala, thirty kalas make one
muhurta, thirty muhurtas make a day-and -night. Now about the division of Surya-Manushya-Deva
related Day/Night is explained: In respect of Human Beings, the nights are for sleep and daytime is for
‘karmaacharana’or of activity. Whatever is stated for humans is a thirty day-night combines or a month.
81
Pitru Devas consider one set of 15 human day-nights as Krishna Paksha -as per Moon’s course from the
day one of Moon’s full illumination being Pournamiie when the Moon’s waning starts as they are active
during that period. Now during and Shukla Paksha, Moon gradually picks up its luster from the Moon-
Fall on Amavasya till the night when the glory of Its dazzle reaches the peak on Purnima. This period is
what humans consider as auspicious. Now, while what human beings reckon as a full one year is just a
day-night for Devas. The period of auspiciousness is Uttarayan for six months a year for Devas and thus
Human Beings too perform all auspicious deeds; Uttarayan is as for the course of Surya from South to
North while Sun’s course from North to South is Dakshinaayan. Chandra Loka’s parikrama around Earth
is for a month, and the Parikrama of Chandra around PitruLoka for a fortnight is a night and another
fortnight a day. Now, Brahma’s one raatri-divas or night and day comprise of Four Yugas of Krita-Treta-
Dwapara-KaliYugas. Kritayuga is of four thousand years reckoned as 360 days for humans and one Deva
day; its sandhya or the yuga’s terminal period is for 400 years and Sandhyaamsha is an additional 400
years totalling 4800 divine years or 1728000 human years. On similar analysis, Tretaayuga is for 3600
divine years or 1287000 human years; Dwaparayuga is of 2400 divine years or 664000 human years and
Kali Yuga divine 1200 years or 432000 human years. The total of Four Yugas is 12000 divine years or
42420000 human years. Deva’s one thousand years are accounted for Brahma Deva’s single day time and
another thousand divine years are of Brahma’s one night. Thus Brahma’s ‘ahoraatra’ or day and night
comprises of 120,00,000 of divine years or 432,00,00,000 human years. Thus ,after one thousand yugas,
Brahma rests for the day and night and then resumes ‘punahsrishti’ or revival of creation process again.)
Both Surya and Chandra cover daily the Seven Dwipas(Jambu, Plaksha, Salmaali, Kusha, Krouncha,
Shaka and Pushkala); SaptaSamudras (Lavana or Salt, Ikshurasa or Sugarcane juice, Sura or Wine, Ghrita
or Classified Butter, Dahi or Curd, Ksheera or Milk and Suswada or Sweet Water); and SaptaParvatas
(Sumru , Kailas, Malaya, Himalaya, Udyachala, Agastyachala, Suvela and Gandhamadana). Normally
Surya Deva covers trilokas each day. Surya Mandala as defined by Veda Vyaasa is nine thousand yojanas
and the total circumference is stated to be 27000 yojanas.Prithvi’s mandala is stated to be fifty crore
yojanas. One half of this is spread north to Meru Parvata and by half of Meru Parvata on four sides one
crore yojanas is stated to to be spread over. Half of Prithvi is stated to spread nine lakh fifty thousand
yojanas. Now the four sided spread of all the four directions is stated as three crore yojanas. This is what
the saptadwipaas and saptasamudras which occuppies the spread of earth. The surrounding area of Prithvi
known as ‘braahma mandala’ is thrice larger than that of Prithvi. Thus the area of Prithvi plus works out
to eleven crore and thirty three lakh yojanas! Now the account of earth and the ‘antariksha’. The area of
the Sky as contained by that of nakshatraas is what Prithvi is occupied. In other words, what ever is the
area of Prithvi is that of ‘antariksha’.
Thus having thus explained about Kaalamaanain some datail as above, the axis of rotation of Earth is
stated by the astronomers is inclined at an angle of 23.1/2 degrees with respect to the perpendicular to the
plane of Earth’s orbit around the Surya. This inclination causes Earth to revolve around Surya and there is
a variation of the length of day time in a year and this causes Seasons.[Ritus or Seasons approximately
coincide with Chaitra-Vaishakha or end March to the last weeks of May when festivals like Ugadi, Shri
Rama Navami, and Vaishakhi are celebrated. GreeshmaRitu or Summer during April-July during
Jyeshtha-Ashadha when festivals like Ratha Yatra and Guru Purnima are observed and Dakshinayana or
the Solar downtrend commences. Varsha Ritu or monsoon coincides with Shravana-Bhadrapadas or the
last portions of July-September when Mangala Gauri and Vara Lakshmi Vratas, Raksha Bandhan,
Krishna Ashtami, Ganesh Chaturthi and Onam are celebrated. Sharad Ritu or Autumn Season coinciding
with Ashvin-Kartika months extending portions of September to November being mild weather the famed
82
SharannavaRatris and Depaavali are celebrated. HemantaRitu or pre-winter Season coinciding with
Margaseersha and the last days of November-January, the festivals of Vasanta Panchami, Shiva Ratri and
Holi are observed; and finally ShishiraRitu or winter coinciding with Maagha-Phalguna months during
the last quarter of January to March is the time of Vasanta Panchami, Shiva Ratri and Holi. The Chandra
maana procedure varies in the sense that the cycle of Seasons starts from the first day of Chaitra
commencing from Ugadi.] Further there are Spring and Autumnal equinoxes when day- night are exactly
of the equal proportion while the duration of day time is the longest in Summer while the opposite
happens in the winter. Thus, Bhumi is considered stationary while Surya -Chandra-and the rest of the
Grahas make perambulations to Bhumi!Nakshatras are quite far from Bhumi and are considered to be
fixed in well defined positions inside the firmament centered around Earth, known as Celestial Sphere;
indeed the size of the sphere is unknown. As Surya-Chandra and the rest of Grahas around the Bhumi,
they appear to be moving in the ‘antariksha’ against of background of the galaxy of Stars. A criss- cross
drawing of lines, circles and points on the sphere is sated to help observe the movements of the celestial
objects.
Now, Earth rotates around on its own axis from ‘prateechya’ or west to ‘praachya’ or east with all the
earthly objects as mountains, oceans , rivers , widespread vegetation of thick forests, mining wealth
underneath and down under the horizon which is divided as two halves between the North Pole to South
Pole and the Earth’s Equator. The orbit of earth as visualised in the context of Celestial Sphere is called as
the Ecliptic and is inclined to the eqautor at an angle of 23 and half degrees. The Ecliptic intersects the
Equator at vernal equinox and automnal equinox. Be that as it may, Surya moves along the Ecliptic at the
rate of a degree by a day thus circling 360 degrees in a year. While so doing the point of Suryodaya
moves towards the North and that northernly movement is named ‘Uttaraayana’. Even as Surya appears
stationary and as he moves along with the ecliptic, the point of Suryodaya commences to move towards
South and thus termed as Dakshinayana. As a result, the Seasons as also the variation of the day time as
well. It is against this brief background, Chandra revolves around the Earth along with the Nakshatras.
Chandra completes the orbit on an average of 27 days, and spends about a day at each of the Nakshatras.
The name of the Nakshatra and the presiding deity are as follows: Krittika - Agni; Rohini-Prajapati;
Mrigashira- Soma; Ardra-Rudra; Punarvasu-Aditi; Pushya-Brihaspati; Ashlesha-Sarpa; Makha-Pitra;
Poorvaphalguni-Aryama; Uttara Phalguni-Bhaga; Hasta-Savita;Chitra-Indra; Svaati- Vayu; Vishakha-
Indrani- Anuradha-Mitra; Jyeshtha- Indra; Moola- Pitra; Purvaashadha-Aapah; Uttaraashadha-
Vishvadeva; Shravana- Vishnu; Dhanishta- Vasu; Shatabhisha- Indra; Purvabhaadra- Ahayekapaat;
Uttara bhadra-Abhirbudhnya; Revati-Pusha; Asvini- Ashvin; and Bharani- Yama .
Dharma Sindhu
a) GrahanaNirnaya: As long as one could vision Chandra and Surya Grahanaas (Eclipses), one would
reckon as the Punya Kaala or the auspicious time. Even if the Grahana were not visible due to the
obstruction of clouds or so, even then on the basis of the information available as per the calculation of
‘Shastraas’about the ‘Sparsha’( beginning) and Moksha (end), one should observe the required ‘Snaana-
Daanaas’. Surya Grahana on Sundays and Chandra Grahana on Mondays are called ‘Chudaamani’ and
‘DaanaadiKaryaas’ bestow endless Punya. One should take bath for ‘BaahyaantaraShuchi’ or external and
83
internal cleanliness as soon as the GrahanaSparsha or the First Touch; during the course of the Grahana,
one should perform Homa-Devarchana-and Shraaddha. When Grahana is receding, then Daanaas are
required to be executed and at the time of Moksha, one should take bath once again; the bath at the
‘SparshaKaala’ and Moksha Kaala are of distinct waters; the Mukti Snaana is defined as follows:
Sheetamushnodakaatpunyamapaarakyamparodakaat, Bhumishthamudhrataapunyam tata prasrava -
nodakam/ TatopisaarasampunyamtatahpunyamNadijalam, TatastirthanadiGangaaPunyaa punya -
stombhudhi/ (Cold water bath is more propitious than with hot water; better bathe with one’s own water;
fresh water from the depths of Bhumi is better from well water exposed and stored; water from a flowing
water is better than in a waterbody; Tirtha water like Ganga is better than that of a from a river; and
bathing in Samudra water is by far better than even a river like Ganges!). GrahanaSnaana should be with
the same clothing as during the Grahana and then only the bath would be stated as Mukti Snaana; that
bath need not be by reciting Mantras. ‘SuvasiniStrees’ or house wives who have their husbands alive
could have neck-deep bath but those women who like to be purer to take head- bath do have the option to
do so. Those women who are in the menstrual stage should keep her utensils seperated and should not
sqeeze her wet clothes after the bath. Fasting three days before or atleast one day before would bestow
‘MahaPhala’ but those Grihastis with sons and daughters need to take up the fast. But they should
perform Deva-PitruTarpana. Persons of all the ‘ChaturVarnaas’ should wet the clothes after an Eclipse as
they would be subject to the regulations of ‘jaataadisutaka’ or ‘Ashuchi’ / impurity of births and deaths as
they would have been deemed as having visioned the Rahu Graha: Sarveshaametavarnaanaamsutakam
Rahu Darshaney. During the ‘GrahanaKaala’, Go-Bhu-HiranyaadiDaanaas would accord far-reaching
benefits. It is stated: SarvamGangaasamamtoyam, SarveyVyaasasamaahDwijaah, Sarvam Bhumi
samamdaanamgrahaney Chandra Suryayoh/ (On occasions like Lunar or Solar Eclipses, all kinds of
waters are like Ganga water; all Brahmanas are like Vyasaacharya; and all kinds of charity are as good as
Bhu daana). Describing the effectiveness of Daana, it is stated: Samanu -
braahmaneydaanamdwigunamBraahmanbruvey,
Shrotriyeshatasaahasrampaatreychaanantyamashnutey/( Offering greetings / namaskaaraas to a
Brahmana by birth might be misplaced but providing charity to a ‘Dwija’ or twice-born who has the
qualification of Samskaaraas like Upanayana or thread marriage and Gayatri Mantra secures better
Punya; a Brahmana who has the Samskaaras but devoid of Vedaadhyayana is called a Brahmanabruva
but still charity to him would be worthy of hundred times more; charity to a well read Brahmana
‘Srotriya’ or he who follows the Brahmana Dharmaas in full spirit and practice would fetch Ananta
Punya). GrahanaShraadha should be done with suitable Dakshina and possibly with Ghritayuktabhojana
followed by Mantra Punascharana; the relevant Mantra states: Chandra Suryoparaagey cha
snaatwaapurvamuposhitah, Sparshaadi Moksha paryantamJapenmantramsamaahitah,
Japaadashaamshatohomastathathahomaacchatappanam,
Homaashaktoujapamkuryaatdhomasankhyaachaturgunam/ (One should discard bhojana well before the
Grahana , take bath at the ‘Sparsha’ or touch of the Grahana and its ‘Moksha’ or termination and perform
‘Japa’ althrough the GrahanaKaala. Out of the ‘JapaSankhya’ (number) so performed, one tenth of the
Sankhya should be the homasankhya and one-tenth of the homasankhya should be the Tarpanasankhya. In
case, one cannot perform Homa and Tarpana, the Japasankhya may be quadrupled. In case tarpana is
performed then they should first recite the Mula (Root) Mantra and then recite
:AmukaamDevataamtyarpayaamiand offer palms-full of water and again sprinkle water on one’s head
reciting: Amukaamdevataamahamabhishinchaami/ before the Tarpana at the rate of one tenth of the
tarpana; this would be followed by Brahmana bhojana to the extent of one tenth of the Brahmanas
engaged for the bhojana-daana-dakshinas. Thus the entire process of Japa-Homa-Tarpana- Maarjana-
Viprabhojana comprising the five components is called ‘Punascharana’ following Surya / Chandra
Grahana Darshana. The Punascharana Mantra vidhana is as follows :- Before GrahanaSparsha, the Karta
takes Snaana and Aasana and recites the Mantra
:AmukagotromukaSharmaahamRaahugrasteyDivaakareyNishaakareyvaaAmukaDevataayaa; Amuka
Mantra siddhi KaamograasaadimuktiparyantamamukaMantrasyaJapaRupampurascharanamkarishye/
(The Sankalpa states that I-of the gotra-naama solemnly resolve that the entire period during the Touch
84
and Termination of the Solar/ Lunar Eclipse period will observe Mantra-Japa- Purascharana). TheMantra
after Grahana Moksha and performing Snaanaadinityakarmaas would resolve by reciting :
AmukaMantrasyakritaitadgrahanakaaliKaamukasankhyaakaJapasaangataasiddhyarthamtaddasaangaho
mataddasaangatarpanataddasaangamaarjanataddasaangaViprabhojanaanikarishye/ After the Sankalpa,
one might perform the seriatum of the Sankalpa failing which the Japaa to the extent of four times of the
original Japasankhya be recited. Those who are unable to perform the Purascharana as above might at
least recite Ishta Devata Prayer and Gayatri Japa.
b) Do’s and Dont’s at the GrahanaKaala:Sleeping during the time of Eclipse leads to illnesses. Passing
urine ends up in poverty and bad luck. Easing the stomach (Stools) leads to the life of ‘krimis’ in the
following birth. ‘Maithuna’ lands up as a pig in the next birth. Head bath during the Eclipse period leads a
person to leprosy and Bhojana in the time paves way to naraka. Eating the remnants of bhojana cooked
before or during the GrahanaKaala is prohibited as would lead to stomach and digestive problems and
similarly drinking even water would tell upon the system. However,the carry forward storage of curd,
milk, butter, ghee, unused oil and such other uncooked stocks might be consumed after the Grahana but
should be duly covered by ‘DharbhaKhandaas’ as would be proteceted by the rays of Sun or Moon in
grahana. ‘GarbhaStrees’ women during conception ought to protect themselves from the fall of the rays as
there had been several evidences of the babies born thereafter sufferng from physical deformities.
c)GrahanaVedhiVichaara:In the case of Surya Grahana, there would be a Vedha or time difference of
four YaamaKaalaas (each day or night has eight yaamaas or four praharas and each yaama has senven and
half ghadis) and in respect of Chandra Grahana the Vedha would be three Yaamaas. Thus, if Surya
grahana is in the early morning, then nothing should be consumed for four yaamas before. If the Surya
Grahana is scheduled in the second yaama of the day, then any consumption before two yaamas is
prohibited. Likewise if Chandra grahana is in the first yaama of a night, then bhojana is to be avoided
during the day’s last two yaamaas before the eclipse. Exceptions are provided however in respect of
children or the Old persons and in their case, bhojana is allowed upto one yaama or 6-8 ghadis
therebefore. A capable person who eats during the Vedhakaala should atone by keeping fast for three
successive nights . Grahanakaalaabhojana attracts ‘PraajaapatyaKrucchaPrayaschitta’. Again, if Surya
and Chandra secure redemption only after their normal setting times or at the time of their day or night
terminations respectively (Sunset or Moon Set), it is stated that they are in a stage of ‘grasta’ or
dormancy; in that case one is required to take bath and purify to vision the full ‘bimba’or globe on the
next day and then only take food.
[ Incidentally, the Raashi positions are as folows: Mesha (Aries), Vrishabha (Taurus), Mithuna (Gemini),
Karkataka (Cancer), Simha (Leo), Kanya ( Virgo), Tula (Libra), Vrischika (Scorpio), Dhanush
(Saggitarius), Makara (Capricon), Kumbha (Aquarius) and Meena (Pisces)].
As the impact of Grahanas on specified JanmaRaashis and andJanma Nakshatras is adverse then the
Raashi-Graha-Nakshatra ‘Shanti’ (pacification) would correct the possible effects as per the Instructions
of Gargaachaarya; if the perscribedShaanti is not within one’s reach, atleast ‘Bimba Daana’ may be
performed. The procedure is to prepare Chandra Bimba (Globe-like Swarupa) or Surya Bimba in Silver
85
as also NaagaBimbaas in gold and place the two bimbas viz. Chandra or Surya and of Naaga representing
Rahu graha in a Copper or KaasyaPaatraas (Vessels) filled with ghee and Tilas or Sesame seeds wrapped
in Vastra (Cloth) and Dakshina (fees) and invoke Chandra or Surya as the case may be and Rahu graha
stating: Mama JanmaRaashiJanma Nakshatra
sthitaamukagrahanasuchitasarvaarishtashaantipurvakamekaadashasthaanasthitagrahanasuchita Shubha
phalapraaptayebimbadaanamkarishye/ Thus giving away the Daana with the above‘Sankalpa’to a well-
read Brahmana, the following prayer be recited: TamomayaMaha Bhima Soma Suryovimardana, Hema
Taarapradaanena mama Shanti prado bhava/ VidhuntudanamastubhyamSimhikaanandanaachyuta,
DaaneynaanenaNaagasyarakshamaamvedhajaadbhayaat/ (Andhakaaramaya! MahaBhayankara! Rahu
Deva! You have the ability of beating up even Surya and Chandra! You provide happiness to your mother
Simhika Devi; Achyuta or the Undiminishable; as I make this obeisance by offering this Naga Bimba at
the time of the Grahana, do relieve me of the GrahanaVedha and provide me security and destroy my
fears).This procedure is valid for those affected by those born in the twelfth, eighth and fourth Raashis.
Such persons affected by the Grahana should not vision the Chandra or Surya Bimba in any case.’ [
Dharma Sindhu quote ends]
Chandra Kavacha
86
maahpaatushruteepaatukalaatmajah/
Ghraanampakshakarahpaatumukhamkumudabandhava,Somahkaroupaatu me
SkandhoupaatusudhaatmakahUrumaitreenidhihpaatumadhyampaatuShasheedharah/
Mrigaangkojaanuneepaatujanghepaatvamritaabdijah,
paadpuHimakaraahpaatupaatupaatuChandrokhilamvapuh/ Phala shruti:
Etaddhikavachampunyambhuktimuktipradaayakam, yah
pathecchrunuyaadvaapisarvartagavijayeebhavet/
Chandra stotram
Chandra Shashthakam
Chandrasyasrununaamaani,
shubadhanimaheepathe,Yanisruthwanarodukhanmuchyathenathrasamsaya.,Sudhakaro, Vidhu, Somo,
glourabhjo, kumuda Priya,Loka Priya, shubrabhanu, chandrama, rohineepathi., Shasee, himakaro, raja,
dwijarajo, nisakara,Aathreya, indu, seethamsu, roshadheesa, kala nidhi., Jaivathruko,Ramaabhraathaa,
ksheerodharnavasambhava,Nakshatra nayaka, shambhusirachoodamanir, vibhu., Thapahartha,
nabhodheepo, namanyethaniyapadeth,Prathyahambhakthisamyukthathasyapeedavinasyathi., Thadhine
cha padedhyasthulabhethsarvamsameehatham,Grahadheenaam cha
sarveshambhavethchandrabhalamsadaa/ .
Chandraashtottarashatanaamastotram
ShrimaanShashidharahChandroTaaraadheeshoNishaakarah,
SudhaanidhihSadaaraadhyahSatpatihSaadhupujitah/ JiteendriyoJagadyonirJyotischakrapravartakah,
vikartanaanujoveeroVbishveshoVidhushaampatih/DoshaakaroDushtadurahPushtimaanShishtapaalakah,
87
Ashta murti priyo Ananda kashtadaarukuthaarakah/ SvaprakaashahPrakaashaatmaadyucharo Deva
bhojanah, KalaadharahKaalaketuhKaamakritKaamadaayakah/
MrityusamhaarakoAmarthoNityaanushthaanadaayakah,
KshamaakarahKsheenapaapahKshayavriddhisamanvitah/
Jaivaatrukahshuchishubhrojayeejayaphalapradah,
SudhaamayahSurasvaamebhaktaanaamishtaamiashtadaayakah/ Bhukti do muktitobhadro bhakta
daadidryabhanjakah, SaamagaanapriyahsarvarakshakahSaagarodbhavah/ Bhayaantakrid bhakti gamyo
bhava bandha vimochakah, jagatprakaashakiranojagadaanandakaaranah/
NissapatnoNiraahaaroNirvikaaroNiraamayah, bhucchaayaacchaaditoBhavyoBhuvanapratipaalakah/
SakalaartiharahSoumyah Soumya
janakahSaadhuvanditahsarvaagamamagjnahsarvagjnoSanakaadimunistutah/
SitacchatradhvajopetahShitaangahShitabhushanah, Sveta maalya -
ambaradharahSvetagandaanulepanah/ DashaasvaradhasamroodhoDandapaanirDhanurdharah,
KundapushpojjvalaakaaroNayanaabjasamudbhavah/ Aatreyagotrajotatyantavinayah Priya daayakah,
karunaa rasa sampurnahKarkataprabhuhAvyayh/ ChaturashraasanaaroodhohChaturoDivyavaahanah,
VivasvanmandalaagjneyavaasoVasusamridhidah/ MaheshvarapriyodaantoMerugotrapradakshinah,
Ghraha mandala madhyastograsitaarkoGrahaadhipah/ DvijaraajoDyutilakoDvibhujoDvijapujitah,
AoudumbaranagaavaasaUdaaroRohinipatih / NityodayoMunistutoNatyaanandaphalapradah,
Sakalaadhlaadanakarahpalaashasamidhaapriyah/ Evam Naksharanaadhasyanaamn -
aamashtottaramshatam, yah pathecchrunuyaadvaapisavatraVijayeebhavet/
PurnenduBimbaVadanaamRatnaabharanaBhushitaam/
VaradaabhayahastaabhyaamDhyaayecchandraSahodareem/ (Salutations to You Mother!You are the
beloved of Padmanabha or the Lotus- Stalked Vishnu. You are the Lotus Eyed, Lotus Faced, Lotus-
Handed, Lotus-Smiled and Lotus Surrounded Devi! You have the Countenance of a fully blossomed
Moon; the most tastefully ornamented Figure of all; the renowned Sister of Chandra!
KaivalyapadavirekhaSuryamandalasamsthita,SomamandalamadhyasthaaVahnimandalasamsthitaa/You
occur in the Surya Mandala; You are right at the Center of Chandra Mandala; You exist in the Agni
Mandala; You are again right in the Center of Vayu Mandala and also happen to be in the Vyoma (Sky)
Mandala!
AntarbalaSthiraalakshmirjaraamarananaashani, ShriranjitaMahakayaaSomasuryargnilochana/
(Internally very tough, besides being sturdy physically too, Devi Lakshmi! You are ever unwavering; the
terminator of the cycle of births and deaths; Shri Ranjita or dazzling due to opulence; Maha Kaya or of a
Giant Figure; Suryachandraagnilochana or of the Three Eyes of Surya, Chandra and Agni!
88
SECTION THREE ON ADHIDEVATA-PRACHYADHIDEVATA SAHITA MANTRAS
1. SURYA
Karanyaasam
Om aasatyena-angushthaabhyaamnamah- Om rajasaavartamaanah-tarjaneebhyaamnamah-Om
niveshayanmadhyamabhyaamnamah-om Amritammartyamchaanaamikaabhyhaamnamah-om
hiranyayenaSavitaarathenakanishtghikaamnamah-om aadevoyaatibhuvanaanipashyhan-
rarathalakaraprishthaabhyaamnamah/
Anganyaasam
Dhyaanam
Vedeemadhyaalalitakamalekarnikaayaamrathasthah/Saptaashvekorkarunaruchivapussaptarajjurvibaahu
h/
GotreramyabahuvidhaguneKaashyapaakhyeptasuutuh/
Kaaligaakhyevishayajanitahpraangmukhahpadmahastah/PadmaasanahPadmakarodwibaahuh,
padmadyurirssaptaturangavaahah/
DvaakarolokaguruhkikreeteemayaprasaadamvidhdaatguDevah/JapaakusumasamkaashamKaashyapeya
mmahadyutim, tamorimsarvapaapaghnampranatosmiDivaakaram/
MulaMantram:Aaasatyenarajasaavartamaanoniveshayannamritammartyayamchahiranyayenanmrita
mmaryamcha, hiranyayenasavitaarathenaadevoyaatibhuvanaanipashyan/
89
Pratyadhidevataa (Rudra) Om kadrudraayaprachetasemeedhushthamaamatavyase,
vochemashantamagumhride/
Surya Kavacha-Stotra-Ashtottara
2. .CHANDRAGRAHA
Karanyaasam
Anganyaasam
Dhyaanam:
Dadhishankhatushaaraabhamkhseeraarnavasamudbhavam,namaamishashinamSomamShambhormakuta
bhushanam/ Pan chopachaarapujaamkritvaa/
Om Apaayasyentyasyasametutevishvatassomavrishniyambhavaavaavaajassyasamgathe/
90
Adhi Devata Pratyadhi Devata sahitaChandragrahassupreetaassuprasnnovaradobhavad/
3. ANGAARA GRAHA
Karanyasa
Anganyaasa
Dhyaanam:
Adhidevataa: Prithivi
Om syonaaprithivibhavaanriksharaaniveshanee, yacchaanahsharmasapradhaah/
PratyadhidevataaKsetrapaalakah
Om Ksherasyapatinaavayagumhitenevajyaamasi, gaamashvamposhayitnavaasanomriraateedrishe/
AdhdevataapratyadhudevataasahitaAngaarakagrahassupreeassuprasannovaradobhavat/
4. BUDHA GRAHA
91
[ BudhaGraha Mantra JapaSankhya-Seventeen thousand]
Karanyaasa
Anganyaasa
Om udhbhudyaagne-hridayaqayanamah/ Ompratijaagrihyenam-
shiraseswaaha/Ishtaapurtesagumsrigedhaamayanscha- shikhaayavashat/ Om punahkrinvastyaa-
kavachaaya hum/ Om pitaramyuvaanam- netratrayaayavoushat/ Om avaataagumseetvayitatumetam-
astraayaphat/ Bhurbhuvassuromitidigbandhah/
Dhyaanam
Om idamVishnurvichakreetredaanidadhepadam,samuudhamasyapaagim Sure/
PratyatiDevataa: ( Narayanah)
Adhi DevataapratyatidhidavataasahitaBudhagrahahasupreetassuprasannovaradobhavat/
5. BRIHASPATI GRAHA
92
BrihaspateatiyadaryetyasyamantrasyaGritsnamadaRishih, Brihaspatirdevataah, trishthibhchhandah
mama AdhidevataaPratryatiDevataasahitaBrihaspatigrahaprasaadasiddhyatheBrihaspatigraha moola
mantra jape viiyogah /
Om Brihaspateatayadaryoarhaat- angushthaabhyaamnamah;omdyumadvibhaati-tarjaneebhyaamnamah;
om kratumajjaneshu- madhamaabhyaamnamah; om yataddeedayacchavaarta-kavachaaya hum; om
ritaprajaatatadasmaaszu-nitratrayaayavoushat; om dravinamdehichitram-astraaya phat/
Bhurbhavasuvaromitidigbandhah/
Dhyaanam
Moola mantra
Om Brihaspateatiyadaryoarhaadyumadvibhaatakratumajjaneshu,
yaddeedayacchavasartaprajaatatadasmaasudravinamdshehichitram/
Om Brahmajajnaanamprathamampurastaadyumadvibhaakikratumajjaneshu,
yaddeeddayacchavasartaprajaatatadasmaasudravinamdhehichitram/
Om Indramvovishvatassarihavaamahejanebhyah, asmaakamastukevalah/
6: SHUKRA GRAHA
Karanyaasa
93
Anganyaasam
Dhyaanam
Moola mantram
Om
Shukramteanyadyajatanteanyadvishnurupeahaneedyourivaasi,Vishvaahimaayaaavasiswadhaavobhadr
aatepuushanniharaatirastu/
Adhidevata : Indraani
Om Indraaneemaasuneerishusupatneemahashravam, nahyasyaaaparamchanajarasaamaratepatih/
PratyadhiDevatah:Indramarutvantah
Om InbdramarutvaihapaahiSamamyathaashaaryaateapibassutasya, ava
praneeteetavashuurasharmannaavivaasantokavayassuyagjnaah/
AdhidevataapratyatidevataasahitaShukragrahahsupreetassuprasannovaradobhavatu/
Shukra Mantra
7. SHANI GRAHA
Karanyaasa
94
vaatvarapaah-kanishthikaabhyaamnamah- om apashrithah-karatalakaraprishtaabhyaamnamah/
Anganyaasa
Dhyaanam
Konasshanascharomandahchhayaahridayaanandanahh,
Maartaandagastadhaasourihpaatangeegrahanayakah/
Abraahmanahkruurakarmaaneelavastromjanadyutih,
krishnoDharmaanujahsshaantahsushkodaravarapradah/ Shodashaitaaninaamaani yah pathecchadine
dine, vishamastopibhagavaansupreetastasyajaayate/-- Neelaanjanasamaabhaasam Ravi
putramYamaagrajam, Chhaayaamartaandasambhutam tam namaamiShanascharam/
Moola Mantram
Om ShamagniragnbhiskaracchannastapatuSuryahshamvaatovaatvaparaaapashrithah/
Adhidevata ( Yama)
Om YamaayaSomagumsunutayamaayajuhuutaahavih,
Yamagumhayagjnogacchhaatyaniduutoaramkritah/
Pratyadhidevataa (Prajapati)
Om Parajaapatenatvadetaanyanyovishvaajaataanipatitaababhuva,
yatkaamaasedjuhumastannoastuvayaggsyaamapatayorayeenaam/
AdhidevataaPratyadhiDevataasahitaShanaischaragrahassupreetassuprasannovaradobhavat/
8 .RAHU GRAHA
Karanyaasa
95
Om kayaanah- angushthaabhyaamnnanah/ Om chitraaabhuvat-tarjaneebhyaamnamnah/ Om
Vooteesadaavridhah- madhyamaabhyaamnamah/ Om sakhaa- anaamikaabhyaamnamah- shikhaa-
kavachaayahum/ Om kayaashachishthayaa-netratrayaayavoushat/ Om vritaa-
karatalakaraprishthaabhyaamnamah/
Anganyaasa
Dhyaanam
Moola Mantram
Om kayaanashchitraaabhuvadaateesadaavridhassakhaa, kayaashchishthayaavritaa/
Om aayamGouhporishnirakrameedasananmaararampunah, pitaramchaprayamthsuvah/
9. KETU GRAHA
Karanyaasa
96
Anganyaasa
Dhyanam
MOOLA MANTRA
Om sachitrachitramchitayanamasmychitrakshatrachitratamamvayodhaam, Chandramtayimpuruveeram b
rihantamchandrachandraabhirgrinateduvasva/
Om Brahma Devaanaampadaveehkaveenaamrushirvipraanaammahishomrigaanaam,
shvenogridhraanaagsvadhitirvanaanaagumsomahpavitramatyetirebhaan/
AdhidevataaPratyatdhidevataasahitahKetugrahassupreetaassuprasannovaradobhavat/
----------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
97
ANNEXTURE ON NAVA GRAHAS
sūryakavacastotram
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
yājñavalkyauvāca।
śṛṇuṣvamuniśārdūlasūryasyakavacaṃśubham।
śarīrārogyadaṃdivyaṃsarvasaubhāgyadāyakam॥ 1॥
dedīpyamānamukuṭaṃsphuranmakarakuṇḍalam।
dhyātvāsahasrakiraṇaṃstotrametadudīrayet॥ 2॥
śiro me bhāskaraḥpātulalāṭaṃme'mitadyutiḥ।
netredinamaṇiḥpātuśravaṇevāsareśvaraḥ॥ 3॥
ghrāṇaṃgharmaghṛṇiḥpātuvadanaṃvedavāhanaḥ।
jihvāṃ me mānadaḥpātukaṇṭhaṃ me suravanditaḥ॥ 4॥
skandhauprabhākaraḥpātuvakṣaḥpātujanapriyaḥ।
pātupādaudvādaśātmāsarvāṅgaṃsakaleśvaraḥ॥ 5॥
sūryarakṣātmakaṃstotraṃlikhitvābhūrjapatrake।
dadhātiyaḥkaretasyavaśagāḥsarvasiddhayaḥ॥ 6॥
susnātoyojapetsamyagyo'dhītesvasthamānasaḥ।
sarogamuktodīrghāyuḥsukhaṃpuṣṭiṃ ca vindati॥ 7॥
॥itiśrīmadyājñavalkyamuniviracitaṃsūryakavacastotraṃsampūrṇam॥
॥śrīsūryāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
vaiśampāyanauvāca।
śṛṇuṣvāvahitorājanśucirbhūtvāsamāhitaḥ।
kṣaṇaṃ ca kuru rājendraguhyaṃvakṣyāmitehitam॥ 1॥
dhaumyenatuyathāproktaṃpārthāyasumahātmane।
nāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃpuṇyaṃśataṃtacchṛṇubhūpate॥ 2॥
sūryo'ryamābhagastvaṣṭāpūṣārkaḥsavitāraviḥ।
gabhastimānajaḥkālomṛtyurdhātāprabhākaraḥ॥ 3॥
pṛthivyāpaścatejaścakhaṃvāyuścaparāyaṇam।
somobṛhaspatiḥśukrobudho'ṅgārakaeva ca ॥ 4॥
indrovivasvāndīptāṃśuḥśuciḥśauriḥśanaiścaraḥ।
brahmāviṣṇuścarudraścaskandovaiśravaṇoyamaḥ॥ 5॥
vaidyutojāṭharaścāgniraindhanastejasāṃpatiḥ।
dharmadhvajovedakartāvedāṅgovedavāhanaḥ॥ 6॥
98
kṛtaṃtretādvāparaścakaliḥsarvāmarāśrayaḥ।
kalākāṣṭhāmuhurtāścapakṣāmāsāṛtustathā॥ 7॥
saṃvatsarakaro'śvatthaḥkālacakrovibhāvasuḥ।
puruṣaḥśāśvatoyogīvyaktāvyaktaḥsanātanaḥ॥ 8॥
lokādhyakṣaḥprajādhyakṣoviśvakarmātamonudaḥ।kālādhyakṣaḥ
varuṇaḥsāgaroṃ'śuścajīmūtojīvano'rihā॥ 9॥
bhūtāśrayobhūtapatiḥsarvalokanamaskṛtaḥ।
sraṣṭāsaṃvartakovahniḥsarvasyādiralolupaḥ॥ 10॥
anantaḥkapilobhānuḥkāmadaḥsarvatomukhaḥ।
jayoviśālovaradaḥsarvadhātuniṣecitā॥ 11॥
sarvabhūtaniṣevitaḥ
manaḥsuparṇobhūtādiḥśīghragaḥprāṇadhāraṇaḥ॥
dhanvantarirdhūmaketurādidevo'diteḥsutaḥ॥ 12॥
dvādaśātmāravindākṣaḥpitāmātāpitāmahaḥ।
svargadvāraṃprajādvāraṃmokṣadvāraṃtriviṣṭapam॥ 13॥
dehakartāpraśāntātmāviśvātmāviśvatomukhaḥ।
carācarātmāsūkṣmātmāmaitreṇavapuṣānvitaḥ॥ 14॥
etadvaikīrtanīyasyasūryasyaivamahātmanaḥ।sūryasyāmitatejasaḥ
nāmnāmaṣṭaśataṃpuṇyaṃśakreṇoktaṃmahātmanā॥ 15॥
proktametatsvyambhuvā
śakrāccanāradaḥprāptodhaumyaścatadanantaram।
dhaumyādyudhiṣṭhiraḥprāpyasarvānkāmānavāptavān॥ 16॥
surapitṛgaṇayakṣasevitaṃhyasuraniśācarasiddhavanditam।
varakanakahutāśanaprabhaṃtvamapimanasyabhidhehibhāskaram॥ 17॥
sūryodayeyastusamāhitaḥpaṭhetsaputralābhaṃdhanaratnasañcayān।
labhetajātismaratāṃsadānaraḥsmṛtiṃ ca medhāṃ ca savindateparām॥ 18॥
imaṃstavaṃdevavarasyayonaraḥprakīrtayecchucisumanāḥsamāhitaḥ।
vimucyateśokadavāgnisāgarāllabhetakāmānmanasāyathepsitān॥ 19॥
॥itiśrīmahābhārateyudhiṣṭhiradhaumyasaṃvāde
āraṇyakaparvaṇiśrīsūryāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotraṃsampūrṇam॥
॥sūryastotraṃśrīyājñavalkyakṛtam॥
॥śrīgurubhyonamaḥ॥
॥ Om̃ śrīmahāgaṇādhipatayenamaḥ॥
99
Om̃ namobhagavateādityāyākhilajagatāṃātmasvarūpeṇakālasvarūpeṇa
caturvidhabhūta-nikāyānāṃbrahmādistambha-paryantānāṃ
antarhṛdayeṣubahirapicākāśaivaupādhinā'vyavadhīyamāno
bhavānekaevakṣaṇalava-nimeṣāvayavopacita-saṃvatsaragaṇena
apā-mādāna-visargābhyāṃimāṃlokayātrāṃanuvahati॥ 1
yaduhavāvavibudharṣabhasavitaradastapatyanusavanaṃaharahaḥ
āmnāyavidhināupatiṣṭhamānānāṃakhila-durita-vṛjinabījāvabharjana
bhagavataḥsamabhidhīmahitapanamaṇḍalam॥ 2
yaihavāvasthiracaranikarāṇāṃnijaniketanānāṃ mana-indriyāsugaṇān
anātmanaḥsvayamātmāantaryāmīpracodayati॥ 3
yaevemaṃlokaṃatikarāla-vadanāndhakāra-saṃjñā-jagaragraha-gilitaṃ
mṛtakamivavicetanaṃavalokyaanukampayāparamakāruṇikaḥīkṣayaiva
utthāpyaaharaharanusavanaṃśreyasisvadharmākhyātmāvasthāne
pravartayatiavanipatirivaasādhūnāṃbhayamudīrayannaṭati॥ 4
paritaāśāpālaiḥtatratatrakamalakośāñjalibhiḥupahṛtārhaṇaḥ॥ 5
athahabhagavantavacaraṇanalinayugalaṃtribhuvanagurubhirvanditaṃ
ahaṃayātayāmayajuḥkāmaḥupasarāmīti॥ 6
evaṃstutaḥsabhagavānvājirūpadharohariḥ।
yajūṃṣyayātayāmānimunaye'dātprasāditaḥ॥ 7
॥itiśrīmadbhāgavatedvādaśaskandheśrīyājñavalkyakṛtaṃ
śrīsūryastotraṃsampūrṇam॥
Chandrakavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
asyaśrīcandrakavacastotramantrasyagautamṛṣiḥ।
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, śrīcandrodevatā, candraprītyarthaṃ jape viniyogaḥ।
samaṃcaturbhujaṃvandekeyūramukuṭojjvalam।
vāsudevasyanayanaṃśaṅkarasya ca bhūṣaṇam॥ 1॥
evaṃdhyātvājapennityaṃśaśinaḥkavacaṃśubham।
śaśīpātuśirodeśaṃbhālaṃpātukalānidhiḥ॥ 2॥
cakṣuṣīcandramāḥpātuśrutīpātuniśāpatiḥ।
100
prāṇaṃkṣapākaraḥpātumukhaṃkumudabāndhavaḥ॥ 3॥
pātukaṇṭhaṃ ca me somaḥskandhejaivātṛkastathā।
karausudhākaraḥpātuvakṣaḥpātuniśākaraḥ॥ 4॥
hṛdayaṃpātu me candronābhiṃśaṅkarabhūṣaṇaḥ।
madhyaṃpātusuraśreṣṭhaḥkaṭiṃpātusudhākaraḥ॥ 5॥
ūrūtārāpatiḥpātumṛgāṅkojānunīsadā।
abdhijaḥpātu me jaṅghepātupādauvidhuḥsadā॥ 6॥
sarvāṇyanyānicāṅgānipātucandū'khilaṃvapuḥ।
etaddhikavacaṃdivyaṃbhuktimuktipradāyakam।
yaḥpaṭhecchṛṇuyādvāpisarvatravijayībhavet॥ 7॥
॥itiśrīcandrakavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
॥śrīcandrāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
śrīmānśaśadharaścandrotārādhīśoniśākaraḥ।
sudhānidhiḥsadārādhyaḥsatpatiḥsādhupūjitaḥ॥ 1॥
jitendriyojagadyoniḥjyotiścakrapravartakaḥ।
vikartanānujovīroviśveśoviduṣāmpatiḥ॥ 2॥
doṣākaroduṣṭadūraḥpuṣṭimānśiṣṭapālakaḥ।
aṣṭamūrtipriyo'nantakaṣṭadārukuṭhārakaḥ॥ 3॥
svaprakāśaḥprakāśātmādyucarodevabhojanaḥ।
kaḷādharaḥkālahetuḥkāmakṛtkāmadāyakaḥ॥ 4॥
mṛtyusaṃhārako'martyonityānuṣṭhānadāyakaḥ।
kṣapākaraḥkṣīṇapāpaḥkṣayavṛddhisamanvitaḥ॥ 5॥
jaivātṛkaḥśucīśubhrojayījayaphalapradaḥ।
sudhāmayassurasvāmībhaktānāmiṣṭadāyakaḥ॥ 6॥
bhuktidomuktidobhadrobhaktadāridryabhañjakaḥ।var bhañjanaḥ
sāmagānapriyaḥsarvarakṣakaḥsāgarodbhavaḥ॥ 7॥
bhayāntakṛtbhaktigamyobhavabandhavimocakaḥ।
jagatprakāśakiraṇojagadānandakāraṇaḥ॥ 8॥
nissapatnonirāhāronirvikāronirāmayaḥ।
bhūcchāyā''cchāditobhavyobhuvanapratipālakaḥ॥ 9॥
sakalārtiharaḥsaumyajanakaḥsādhuvanditaḥ।
sarvāgamajñaḥsarvajñosanakādimunistutaḥ॥ 10॥
sitacchatradhvajopetaḥsītāṃgosītabhūṣaṇaḥ।
101
var ṣītāṃgoṣītabhūṣaṇaḥ var pītāṃgopītabhūṣaṇaḥ
śvetamālyāmbaradharaḥśvetagandhānulepanaḥ॥ 11॥
daśāśvarathasaṃrūḍhodaṇḍapāṇiḥdhanurdharaḥ।
kundapuṣpojjvalākāronayanābjasamudbhavaḥ॥ 12॥
ātreyagotrajo'tyantavinayaḥpriyadāyakaḥ।
karuṇārasasampūrṇaḥkarkaṭaprabhuravyayaḥ॥ 13॥
caturaśrāsanārūḍhaścaturodivyavāhanaḥ।
vivasvanmaṇḍalāgneyavāsovasusamṛddhidaḥ॥ 14॥
maheśvaraḥpriyodāntyomerugotrapradakṣiṇaḥ।
grahamaṇḍalamadhyasthograsitārkograhādhipaḥ॥ 15॥
dvijarājodyutilakodvibhujodvijapūjitaḥ।
audumbaranagāvāsaudārorohiṇīpatiḥ॥ 16॥
nityodayomunistutyonityānandaphalapradaḥ।
sakalāhlādanakarophalāśasamidhapriyaḥ॥ 17॥
evaṃnakṣatranāthasyanāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam।
candrastotram
namaścandramase॥
namaścandrāyasomāyendavekumudabandhave।
vilohitāyaśubhrāyaśuklāmbaradharāya ca ॥ 1॥
tvamevasarvalokānāmāpyāyanakaraḥsadā।
kṣīrodbhavāyadevāyanamaḥśaṅgaraśekhara॥ 2॥
yugānāṃyugakartātvaṃniśānāthoniśākaraḥ।
saṃvatsarāṇāṃmāsānāmṛtūnāṃtutathaiva ca ॥ 3॥
grahāṇāṃ ca tvameko'sisaumyaḥsomakaraḥprabhuḥ।
oṣadhīpatayetubhyaṃrohiṇīpatayenamaḥ॥ 4॥
idaṃtupaṭhatestotraṃprātarutthāyayonaraḥ।
divāvāyadivārātraubaddhacitto hi yonaraḥ॥ 5॥
nabhayaṃvidyatetasyakāryasiddhirbhaviṣyati।
ahorātrakṛttaṃpāpaṃpaṭhanādevanaśyati॥ 6॥
dvijarājomahāpuṇyastārāpatirviśeṣataḥ।
oṣadhīnāṃ ca yorājāsasomaḥprīyatāṃ mama ॥ 7॥
iticandrastotraṃsampūrṇam।
102
maṅgalakavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
asyaśrīaṅgārakakavacastotramantrasyakaśyapaṛṣiḥ,
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, aṅgārakodevatā, bhaumaprītyarthaṃ jape viniyogaḥ।
raktāmbaroraktavapuḥkirīṭīcaturbhujomeṣagamogadābhṛt।
dharāsutaḥśaktidharaścaśūlīsadā mama syādvaradaḥpraśāntaḥ॥ 1॥
aṅgārakaḥśirorakṣenmukhaṃvaidharaṇīsutaḥ।
śravauraktāmbaraḥpātunetre me raktalocanaḥ॥ 2॥
nāsāṃśaktidharaḥpātumukhaṃ me raktalocanaḥ।
bhujau me raktamālī ca hastauśaktidharastathā॥ 3॥
vakṣaḥpātuvarāṅgaścahṛdayaṃpāturohitaḥ।
kaṭiṃ me graharājaścamukhaṃcaivadharāsutaḥ॥ 4॥
jānujaṅghekujaḥpātupādaubhaktapriyaḥsadā।
sarvāṇyanyānicāṅgānirakṣenmemeṣavāhanaḥ॥ 5॥
yaidaṃkavacaṃdivyaṃsarvaśatrunivāraṇam।
bhūtapretapiśācānāṃnāśanaṃsarvasiddhidam॥ 6॥
sarvarogaharaṃcaivasarvasampatpradaṃśubham।
bhuktimuktipradaṃnṝṇāṃsarvasaubhāgyavardhanam।
rogabandhavimokṣaṃ ca satyametannasaṃśayaḥ॥ 7॥
॥itiśrīmārkaṇḍeyapurāṇemaṅgalakavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
Mangalkārakāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
mahīsutomahābhāgomaṃgaḷomaṃgaḷapradaḥ।
mahāvīromahāśūromahābalaparākramaḥ॥ 1॥
mahāraudromahābhadromānanīyodayākaraḥ।
mānajo'marṣaṇaḥkrūraḥtāpapāpavivarjitaḥ॥ 2॥
supratīpaḥsutāmrākṣaḥsubrahmaṇyaḥsukhapradaḥ।
vakrastambhādigamanovareṇyovaradaḥsukhī॥ 3॥
vīrabhadrovirūpākṣovidūrasthovibhāvasuḥ।
nakṣatracakrasañcārīkṣatrapaḥkṣātravarjitaḥ॥ 4॥
kṣayavṛddhivinirmuktaḥkṣamāyuktovicakṣaṇaḥ।
akṣīṇaphaladaḥcakṣurgocaraṣṣubhalakṣaṇaḥ॥ 5॥
vītarāgovītabhayovijvaroviśvakāraṇaḥ।
nakṣatrarāśisañcāronānābhayanikṛntanaḥ॥ 6॥
103
kamanīyodayāsāraḥkanatkanakabhūṣaṇaḥ।
bhayaghnobhavyaphaladobhaktābhayavarapradaḥ॥ 7॥
śatruhantāśamopetaḥśaraṇāgatapoṣakaḥ।
sāhasaḥsadguṇādhyakṣaḥsādhuḥsamaradurjayaḥ॥ 8॥
duṣṭadūraḥśiṣṭapūjyaḥsarvakaṣṭanivārakaḥ।
duśceṣṭavārakoduḥkhabhañjanodurdharohariḥ॥ 9॥
duḥsvapnahantādurdharṣoduṣṭagarvavimocakaḥ।
bharadvājakulodbhūtobhūsutobhavyabhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 10॥
raktāmbaroraktavapurbhaktapālanatatparaḥ।
caturbhujogadādhārīmeṣavāhomitāśanaḥ॥ 11॥
śaktiśūladharaśśaktaḥśastravidyāviśāradaḥ।
tārkikaḥtāmasādhāraḥtapasvītāmralocanaḥ॥ 12॥
taptakāñcanasaṃkāśoraktakiñjalkasannibhaḥ।
gotrādhidevogomadhyacaroguṇavibhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 13॥
asṛjaṃgārako'vantīdeśādhīśojanārdanaḥ।
sūryayāmyapradeśasthoyāvanoyāmyadi'gmukhaḥ॥ 14॥
trikoṇamaṇḍalagatotridaśādhipasannutaḥ।
śuciḥśucikaraḥśūrośucivaśyaḥśubhāvahaḥ॥ 15॥
meṣavṛścikarāśīśomedhāvīmitabhāṣaṇaḥ।
sukhapradaḥsurūpākṣaḥsarvābhīṣṭaphalapradaḥ॥ 16॥
॥itimaṅgalaevaṃaṅgārakāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotramsampūrṇam॥
॥aṅgārakastotram॥
asyaśrīaṅgārakastotrasya।
virūpāṅgirasaṛṣiḥ।
agnirdevatā।
gāyatrīchandaḥ।
bhaumaprītyarthaṃ jape viniyogaḥ।
aṅgārakaḥśaktidharolohitāṅgodharāsutaḥ।
kumāromaṅgalobhaumomahākāyodhanapradaḥ॥ 1॥
ṛṇahartādṛṣṭikartārogakṛdroganāśanaḥ।
vidyutprabhovraṇakaraḥkāmadodhanahṛtkujaḥ॥ 2॥
sāmagānapriyoraktavastroraktāyatekṣaṇaḥ।
lohitoraktavarṇaścasarvakarmāvabodhakaḥ॥ 3॥
raktamālyadharohemakuṇḍalīgrahanāyakaḥ।
nāmānyetānibhaumasyayaḥpaṭhetsatataṃnaraḥ॥ 4॥
104
ṛṇaṃtasya ca daurbhāgyaṃdāridryaṃ ca vinaśyati।
dhanaṃprāpnotivipulaṃstriyaṃcaivamanoramām॥ 5॥
vaṃśoddyotakaraṃputraṃlabhatenātrasaṃśayaḥ।
yo'rcayedahnibhaumasyamaṅgalaṃbahupuṣpakaiḥ॥ 6॥
sarvānaśyatipīḍā ca tasyagrahakṛtādhruvam॥ 7॥
॥itiśrīskandapurāṇeaṅgārakastotraṃsaṃpūrṇam॥
budhakavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
asyaśrībudhakavacastotramantrasyakaśyapaṛṣiḥ,
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, budhodevatā, budhaprītyarthaṃ jape viniyogaḥ॥
budhastupustakadharaḥkuṅkumasyasamadyutiḥ।
pītāmbaradharaḥpātupītamālyānulepanaḥ॥ 1॥
kaṭiṃ ca pātu me saumyaḥśirodeśaṃbudhastathā।
netrejñānamayaḥpātuśrotrepātuniśāpriyaḥ॥ 2॥
ghrāṇaṃgandhapriyaḥpātujihvāṃvidyāprado mama ।
kaṇṭhaṃpātuvidhoḥputrobhujaupustakabhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 3॥
vakṣaḥpātuvarāṅgaścahṛdayaṃrohiṇīsutaḥ।
nābhiṃpātusurārādhyomadhyaṃpātukhageśvaraḥ॥ 4॥
jānunīrauhiṇeyaścapātujaṅghe'khilapradaḥ।
pādau me bodhanaḥpātupātusaumyo'khilaṃvapuḥ॥ 5॥
etaddhikavacaṃdivyaṃsarvapāpapraṇāśanam।
sarvarogapraśamanaṃsarvaduḥkhanivāraṇam॥ 6॥
āyurārogyaśubhadaṃputrapautrapravardhanam।
yaḥpaṭhecchṛṇuyādvāpisarvatravijayībhavet॥ 7॥
॥itiśrībrahmavaivartapurāṇebudhakavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
॥śrībudhāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
budhobudhārcitaḥsaumyaḥsaumyacittaḥśubhapradaḥ।
dṛḍhavratodṛḍhabalaśrutijālaprabodhakaḥ॥ 1॥
satyavāsaḥsatyavacāśreyasāmpatiravyayaḥ।
105
somajaḥsukhadaḥśrīmānsomavaṃśapradīpakaḥ॥ 2॥
vedavidvedatattvajñovedāntajñānabhāskaraḥ।
vidyāvicakṣaṇavidurvidvatprītikaroṛjaḥ॥ 3॥
viśvānukūlasañcārīviśeṣavinayānvitaḥ।
vividhāgamasārajñovīryavānvigatajvaraḥ॥ 4॥
trivargaphalado'nantaḥtridaśādhipapūjitaḥ।
buddhimānbahuśāstrajñobalībandhavimocakaḥ॥ 5॥
vakrātivakragamanovāsavovasudhādhipaḥ।
prasādavadanovandyovareṇyovāgvilakṣaṇaḥ॥ 6॥
satyavānsatyasaṃkalpaḥsatyabandhiḥsadādaraḥ।
sarvarogapraśamanaḥsarvamṛtyunivārakaḥ॥ 7॥
vāṇijyanipuṇovaśyovātāṃgīvātarogahṛt।
sthūlaḥsthairyaguṇādhyakṣaḥsthūlasūkṣmādikāraṇaḥ॥ 8॥
aprakāśaḥprakāśātmāghanogaganabhūṣaṇaḥ।
vidhistutyoviśālākṣovidvajjanamanoharaḥ॥ 9॥
cāruśīlaḥsvaprakāśocapalaścajitendriyaḥ।
uda'gmukhomakhāsaktomagadhādhipatirharaḥ॥ 10॥
saumyavatsarasañjātaḥsomapriyakaraḥsukhī।
siṃhādhirūḍhaḥsarvajñaḥśikhivarṇaḥśivaṃkaraḥ॥ 11॥
pītāmbaropītavapuḥpītacchatradhvajāṃkitaḥ।
khaḍgacarmadharaḥkāryakartākaluṣahārakaḥ॥ 12॥
ātreyagotrajo'tyantavinayoviśvapāvanaḥ।
cāmpeyapuṣpasaṃkāśaḥcāraṇaḥcārubhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 13॥
vītarāgovītabhayoviśuddhakanakaprabhaḥ।
bandhupriyobandhayuktovanamaṇḍalasaṃśritaḥ॥ 14॥
arkeśānapradeṣasthaḥtarkaśāstraviśāradaḥ।
praśāntaḥprītisaṃyuktaḥpriyakṛtpriyabhāṣaṇaḥ॥ 15॥
medhāvīmādhavāsaktomithunādhipatiḥsudhīḥ।
kanyārāśipriyaḥkāmapradoghanaphalāśrayaḥ॥ 16॥
budhasyevamprakāreṇanāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam।
sampūjyavidhivatkartāsarvānkāmānavāpnuyāt॥ 17॥
॥itibudhaaṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
॥budhastotram॥
athabudhastotram।
106
asyaśrībudhastotramahāmantrasyavasiṣṭhaṛṣiḥ।anuṣṭupchandaḥ।
budhodevatā।budhaprītyarthe jape viniyogaḥ।
dhyānam।
bhujaiścaturbhirvaradābhayāsigadaṃvahantaṃsumukhaṃpraśāntam।
pītaprabhaṃcandrasutaṃsureḍhyaṃsimheniṣaṇṇaṃbudhamāśrayāmi॥
pītāmbaraḥpītavapuḥpītadhvajarathasthitaḥ।
pīyūṣaraśmitanayaḥpātumāṃsarvadābudhaḥ॥ 1॥
siṃhavāhaṃsiddhanutaṃsaumyaṃsaumyaguṇānvitam।
somasūnuṃsurārādhyaṃsarvadaṃsaumyamāśraye॥ 2॥
budhaṃbuddhipradātāraṃbāṇabāṇāsanojjvalam।
bhadrapradaṃbhītiharaṃbhaktapālanamāśraye॥ 3॥
ātreyagotrasañjātamāśritārtinivāraṇam।
āditeyakulārādhyamāśusiddhidamāśraye॥ 4॥
kalānidhitanūjātaṃkaruṇārasavāridhim।
kalyāṇadāyinaṃnityaṃkanyārāśyadhipaṃbhaje॥ 5॥
mandasmitamukhāmbhojaṃmanmathāyutasundaram।
mithunādhīśamanaghaṃmṛgāṅkatanayaṃbhaje॥ 6॥
caturbhujaṃcārurūpaṃcarācarajagatprabhum।
carmakhaḍgadharaṃvandecandragrahatanūbhavam॥ 7॥
pañcāsyavāhanagataṃpañcapātakanāśanam।
pītagandhaṃpītamālyaṃbudhaṃbudhanutaṃbhaje॥ 8॥
budhastotramidaṃguhyaṃvasiṣṭhenoditaṃpurā।
yaḥpaṭhecchṛṇūyādvāpisarvābhīṣṭamavāpnuyāt॥ 9॥
itibudhastotraṃsampūrṇam।
॥bṛhaspatikavacam॥
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
asyaśrībṛhaspatikavacastotramantrasyaīśvaraṛṣiḥ,
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, gururdevatā, gaṃbījaṃ, śrīśaktiḥ,
klīṃkīlakaṃ, guruprītyarthaṃ jape viniyogaḥ।
abhīṣṭaphaladaṃdevaṃsarvajñaṃsurapūjitam।
akṣamālādharaṃśāntaṃpraṇamāmibṛhaspatim॥ 1॥
bṛhaspatiḥśiraḥpātulalāṭaṃpātu me guruḥ।
karṇausuraguruḥpātunetreme'bhīṣṭadāyakaḥ॥ 2॥
jihvāṃpātusurācāryonāsāṃ me vedapāragaḥ।
107
mukhaṃ me pātusarvajñokaṇṭhaṃ me devatāguruḥ॥ 3॥
bhujāvāṅgirasaḥpātukaraupātuśubhapradaḥ।
stanau me pātuvāgīśaḥkukṣiṃ me śubhalakṣaṇaḥ॥ 4॥
nābhiṃdevaguruḥpātumadhyaṃpātusukhapradaḥ।
kaṭiṃpātujagadvandyaūrū me pātuvākpatiḥ॥ 5॥
jānujaṅghesurācāryopādauviśvātmakastathā।
anyāniyānicāṅgānirakṣenmesarvatoguruḥ॥ 6॥
ityetatkavacaṃdivyaṃtrisandhyaṃyaḥpaṭhennaraḥ।
sarvānkāmānavāpnotisarvatravijayībhavet॥ 7॥
॥itiśrībrahmayāmaloktaṃbṛhaspatikavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
॥śrīgurvāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
gururguṇavarogoptāgocarogopatipriyaḥ।
guṇīguṇavatāṃśreṣṭhogurūṇāṅgururavyayaḥ॥ 1॥
jetājayantojayadojīvo'nantojayāvahaḥ।
āṅgīraso'dhvarāsaktovivikto'dhvarakṛtparaḥ॥ 2॥
vācaspatirvaśīvaśyovariṣṭhovāgvicakṣaṇaḥ।
cittaśuddhikaraḥśrīmāncaitraḥcitraśikhaṇḍijaḥ॥ 3॥
bṛhadrathobṛhadbhānurbṛhaspatirabhīṣṭadaḥ।
surācāryaḥsurārādhyaḥsurakāryahitaṃkaraḥ॥ 4॥
gīrvāṇapoṣakodhanyogīṣpatirgiriśo'naghaḥ।
dhīvarodhiṣaṇodivyabhūṣaṇodevapūjitaḥ॥ 5॥
dhanurdharodaityahantādayāsārodayākaraḥ।
dāridryanāśakodhanyodakṣiṇāyanasambhavaḥ॥ 6॥
dhanurmīnādhipo devo dhanurbāṇadharohariḥ।
āṅgīrasābdasañjātoāṅgīrasakulasambhavaḥ॥ 7 ॥
var āṅgīrasakulodbhavaḥ
sindhudeśādhipodhīmānsvarṇavarṇaḥcaturbhujaḥ।
var svarṇakaśca
hemāṅgadohemavapurhemabhūṣaṇabhūṣitaḥ॥ 8॥
puṣyanāthaḥpuṣyarāgamaṇimaṇḍalamaṇḍitaḥ।
kāśapuṣpasamānābhaḥkalidoṣanivārakaḥ॥ 9॥
indrādidevodeveṣodevatābhīṣṭadāyakaḥ।
108
asamānabalaḥsattvaguṇasampadvibhāsuraḥ॥ 10॥
bhūsurābhīṣṭadobhūriyaśaḥpuṇyavivardhanaḥ।
dharmarūpodhanādhyakṣodhanadodharmapālanaḥ॥ 11॥
sarvavedārthatattvajñaḥsarvāpadvinivārakaḥ।
sarvapāpapraśamanaḥsvamatānugatāmaraḥ॥ 12॥
var svamātānugatāmaraḥ, svamātānugatāvaraḥ
ṛgvedapāragoṛkṣarāśimārgapracārakaḥ।
sadānandaḥsatyasandhaḥsatyasaṃkalpamānasaḥ॥ 13॥
sarvāgamajñaḥsarvajñaḥsarvavedāntavidvaraḥ।
brahmaputrobrāhmaṇeśobrahmavidyāviśāradaḥ॥ 14॥
samānādhikanirmuktaḥsarvalokavaśaṃvadaḥ।
sasurāsuragandharvavanditaḥsatyabhāṣaṇaḥ॥ 15॥
namaḥsurendravandyāyadevācāryāyatenamaḥ।
namaste'nantasāmarthyavedasiddhāntapāragaḥ॥ 16॥
sadānandanamastestunamaḥpīḍāharāya ca ।
namovācaspatetubhyaṃ namaste pītavāsase॥ 17॥
namo'dvitīyarūpāyalambakūrcāyatenamaḥ।
namaḥprakṛṣṭanetrāyaviprāṇāmpatayenamaḥ॥ 18॥
namobhārgavaṣiṣyāyavipannahitakāriṇe।
namaste surasainyānāṃvipatchidrānaketave॥ 19॥
bṛhaspatiḥsurācāryodayāvānśubhalakṣaṇaḥ।
lokatrayaguruḥśrīmānsarvagaḥsarvatovibhuḥ॥ 20॥
sarveśaḥsarvadātuṣṭaḥsarvadaḥsarvapūjitaḥ।
akrodhanomuniśreṣṭhodīptikartājagatpitā॥ 21॥
viśvātmāviśvakartā ca viśvayonirayonijaḥ।
bhūrbhuvodhanadāsājabhaktājīvomahābalaḥ॥ 22॥
bṛhaspatiḥkāṣyapeyodayāvānṣubhalakṣaṇaḥ।
īṣṭaphaladaḥśrīmānsubhadgaranamostute॥ 23॥
bṛhaspatissurācāryodevāsurasupūjitaḥ।
ācāryodānavāriṣṭasuramantrīpurohitaḥ॥ 24॥
kālajñaḥkālaṛgvettācittadaścaprajāpatiḥ।
viṣṇuḥkṛṣṇaḥsadāsūkṣmaḥpratidevojjvalagrahaḥ॥ 25॥
॥itigurvāṣṭottaraśatanāmastotramsampūrṇam॥
The shloka-s for nAmAvalI are 1 to 15, 20, 21, and first line of 22.
The shloka-s 16 to 19 are not included in aShTottrashatanAma-s.
109
॥gurustotram॥
athagurustotram।
bṛhaspatiḥsurācāryodayāvānśubhalakṣaṇaḥ।
lokatrayaguruḥśrīmānsarvajñaḥsarvakovidaḥ॥ 1॥
sarveśaḥsarvadā'bhīṣṭaḥsarvajitsarvapūjitaḥ।
akrodhanomuniśreṣṭhonītikartāguruḥpitā॥ 2॥
viśvātmāviśvakartā ca viśvayonirayonijaḥ।
bhūrbhuvaḥsuvaroṃcaivabhartācaivamahābalaḥ॥ 3॥
pañcaviṃśatināmānipuṇyāniniyatātmanā।
vasatānandabhavaneviṣṇunākīrtitānivai॥ 4॥
yaḥpaṭhetprātarutthāyaprayataḥsusamāhitaḥ।
viparīto'pibhagavānprītobhavativaiguruḥ॥ 5॥
yaśchṛṇotigurustotraṃciraṃjīvennasaṃśayaḥ।
bṛhaspatikṛtāpīḍānakadācidbhaviṣyati॥ 6॥
itigurustotraṃsampūrṇam।
śukrakavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
Om̃ asyaśrīśukrakavacastotramantrasyabhāradvājaṛṣiḥ।
anuṣṭupchandaḥ।śrīśukrodevatā।
śukraprītyarthe jape viniyogaḥ॥
mṛṇālakundendupayojasuprabhaṃpītāmbaraṃprasṛtamakṣamālinam।
samastaśāstrārthavidhiṃmahāntaṃdhyāyetkaviṃvāñchitamarthasiddhaye॥ 1॥
Om̃ śiro me bhārgavaḥpātubhālaṃpātugrahādhipaḥ।
netredaityaguruḥpātuśrotre me candanadyutiḥ॥ 2॥
pātu me nāsikāṃkāvyovadanaṃdaityavanditaḥ।
vacanaṃcośanāḥpātukaṇṭhaṃśrīkaṇṭhabhaktimān॥ 3॥
bhujautejonidhiḥpātukukṣiṃpātumanovrajaḥ।
nābhiṃbhṛgusutaḥpātumadhyaṃpātumahīpriyaḥ॥ 4॥
kaṭiṃ me pātuviśvātmāūrū me surapūjitaḥ।
jānuṃjāḍyaharaḥpātujaṅghejñānavatāṃvaraḥ॥ 5॥
gulphauguṇanidhiḥpātupātupādauvarāmbaraḥ।
110
sarvāṇyaṅgāni me pātusvarṇamālāpariṣkṛtaḥ॥ 6॥
yaidaṃkavacaṃdivyaṃpaṭhatiśraddhayānvitaḥ।
natasyajāyatepīḍābhārgavasyaprasādataḥ॥ 7॥
॥itiśrībrahmāṇḍapurāṇeśukrakavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
Shukrṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
śukraḥśuciḥśubhaguṇaḥśubhadaḥśubhalakṣaṇaḥ।
śobhanākṣaḥśubhrarūpaḥśuddhasphaṭikabhāsvaraḥ॥ 1॥
dīnārtihārakodaityaguruḥdevābhivanditaḥ।
kāvyāsaktaḥkāmapālaḥkaviḥkaḷyāṇadāyakaḥ॥ 2॥
bhadramūrtirbhadraguṇobhārgavobhaktapālanaḥ।
bhogadobhuvanādhyakṣobhuktimuktiphalapradaḥ॥ 3॥
cāruśīlaścārurūpaścārucandranibhānanaḥ।
nidhirnikhilaśāstrajñonītividyādhurandharaḥ॥ 4॥
sarvalakṣaṇasampannaḥsarvāpadguṇavarjitaḥ।
samānādhikanirmuktaḥsakalāgamapāragaḥ॥ 5॥
bhṛgurbhogakarobhūmisurapālanatatparaḥ।
manasvīmānadomānyomāyātītomahāṣayaḥ॥ 6॥
baliprasanno'bhayadobalībalaparākramaḥ।
bhavapāśaparityāgobalibandhavimocakaḥ॥ 7॥
ghanāśayoghanādhyakṣokambugrīvaḥkaḷādharaḥ।
kāruṇyarasasampūrṇaḥkaḷyāṇaguṇavardhanaḥ॥ 8॥
śvetāmbaraḥśvetavapuḥcaturbhujasamanvitaḥ।
akṣamālādharo'cintyaḥakṣīṇaguṇabhāsuraḥ॥ 9॥
nakṣatragaṇasañcāronayadonītimārgadaḥ।
varṣapradohṛṣīkeśaḥkleśanāśakaraḥkaviḥ॥ 10॥
cintitārthapradaḥśāntamatiḥcittasamādhikṛt।
ādhivyādhiharobhūrivikramaḥpuṇyadāyakaḥ॥ 11॥
purāṇapuruṣaḥpūjyaḥpuruhūtādisannutaḥ।
ajeyovijitārātirvividhābharaṇojjvalaḥ॥ 12॥
kundapuṣpapratīkāśomandahāsomahāmatiḥ।
muktāphalasamānābhomuktidomunisannutaḥ॥ 13॥
ratnasiṃhāsanārūḍhorathasthorajataprabhaḥ।
sūryaprāgdeśasañcāraḥsuraśatrusuhṛtkaviḥ॥ 14॥
111
tulāvṛṣabharāśīśodurdharodharmapālakaḥ।
bhāgyadobhavyacāritrobhavapāśavimocakaḥ॥ 15॥
gauḍadeśeśvarogoptāguṇīguṇavibhūṣaṇaḥ।
jyeṣṭhānakṣatrasambhūtojyeṣṭhaḥśreṣṭhaḥśucismitaḥ॥ 16॥
apavargaprado'nantaḥsantānaphaladāyakaḥ।
sarvaiśvaryapradaḥsarvagīrvāṇagaṇasannutaḥ॥ 17॥
evaṃśukragrahasyaivakramādaṣṭottaraṃśatam।
sarvapāpapraśamanamsarvapuṇyaphalapradam॥ 18॥
yaḥpaṭhecchruṇuyādvāpisarvānkāmānavāpnuyāt॥ 19॥
॥śukrastotram॥
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
śukraḥkāvyaḥśukraretāśuklāmbaradharaḥsudhīḥ।
himābhaḥkuntadhavalaḥśubhrāṃśuḥśuklabhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 1॥
nītijñonītikṛnnītimārgagāmīgrahādhipaḥ।
uśanāvedavedāṅgapāragaḥkavirātmavit॥ 2॥
bhārgavaḥkaruṇāḥsindhurjñānagamyaḥsutapradaḥ।
śukrasyaitānināmāniśukraṃsmṛtvātuyaḥpaṭhet॥ 3॥
āyurdhanaṃsukhaṃputraṃlakṣmīṃvasatimuttamām।
vidyāṃcaivasvayaṃtasmaiśukrastuṣṭodadāti ca ॥ 4॥
itiśrīskandapurāṇeśukrastotraṃsampūrṇam।
śrīśanivajrapaṃjarakavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ॥
viniyogaḥ।
Om̃ asyaśrīśanaiścaravajrapañjarakavacasyakaśyapaṛṣiḥ,
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, śrīśanaiścaradevatā,
śrīśanaiścaraprītyarthe jape viniyogaḥ॥
ṛṣyādinyāsaḥ।
śrīkaśyapaṛṣayenamaḥśirasi।
anuṣṭupchandasenamaḥmukhe।
śrīśanaiścaradevatāyainamaḥhṛdi।
śrīśanaiścaraprītyarthe jape viniyogāyanamaḥsarvāṅge॥
112
dhyānam।
nīlāmbaronīlavapuḥkirīṭīgṛdhrasthitastrāsakarodhanuṣmān।
caturbhujaḥsūryasutaḥprasannaḥsadā mama syādvaradaḥpraśāntaḥ॥ 1॥
brahmāuvāca॥
śṛṇudhvamṛṣayaḥsarveśanipīḍāharaṃmahat।
kavacaṃśanirājasyasaureridamanuttamam॥ 2॥
kavacaṃdevatāvāsaṃvajrapaṃjarasaṃjñakam।
śanaiścaraprītikaraṃsarvasaubhāgyadāyakam॥ 3॥
Om̃ śrīśanaiścaraḥpātubhālaṃ me sūryanandanaḥ।
netrechāyātmajaḥpātupātukarṇauyamānujaḥ॥ 4॥
nāsāṃvaivasvataḥpātumukhaṃ me bhāskaraḥsadā।
snigdhakaṇṭhaśca me kaṇṭhaṃbhujaupātumahābhujaḥ॥ 5॥
skandhaupātuśaniścaivakaraupātu-śubhapradaḥ।
vakṣaḥpātuyamabhrātākukṣiṃpātvasitastathā॥ 6॥
nābhiṃgrahapatiḥpātumandaḥpātukaṭiṃtathā।
ūrūmamāntakaḥpātuyamojānuyugaṃtathā॥ 7॥
pādaumandagatiḥpātusarvāṃgaṃpātupippalaḥ।
aṃgopāṃgānisarvāṇirakṣen me sūryanandanaḥ॥ 8॥
ityetatkavacaṃdivyaṃpaṭhetsūryasutasyayaḥ।
natasyajāyatepīḍāprītobhavatisūryajaḥ॥ 9॥
vyaya-janma-dvitīyasthomṛtyusthānagato'pivā।
kalatrasthogatovāpisuprītastusadāśaniḥ॥ 10॥
aṣṭamasthesūryasutevyayejanmadvitīyage।
kavacaṃpaṭhatenityaṃnapīḍājāyatekvacit॥ 11॥
ityetatkavacaṃdivyaṃsaureryannirmitaṃpurā।
dvādaśāṣṭamajanmasthadoṣānnāśayatesadā।
janmalagnasthitāndoṣānsarvānnāśayateprabhuḥ॥ 12॥
॥itiśrībrahmāṇḍapurāṇe brahma-nāradasaṃvāde
śanivajrapaṃjarakavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
śrīśaniaṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
śanaiścarāyaśāntāyasarvābhīṣṭapradāyine।
113
śaraṇyāyavareṇyāyasarveśāyanamonamaḥ॥ 1॥
saumyāyasuravandyāyasuralokavihāriṇe।
sukhāsanopaviṣṭāyasundarāyanamonamaḥ॥ 2॥
ghanāyaghanarūpāyaghanābharaṇadhāriṇe।
ghanasāravilepāyakhadyotāyanamonamaḥ॥ 3॥
mandāyamandaceṣṭāyamahanīyaguṇātmane।
martyapāvanapādāyamaheśāyanamonamaḥ॥ 4॥
chāyāputrāyaśarvāyaśaratūṇīradhāriṇe।
carasthirasvabhāvāyacañcalāyanamonamaḥ॥ 5॥
nīlavarṇāyanityāyanīlāñjananibhāya ca ।
nīlāmbaravibhūṣāyaniścalāyanamonamaḥ॥ 6॥
vedyāyavidhirūpāyavirodhādhārabhūmaye।
bhedāspadasvabhāvāyavajradehāyatenamaḥ॥ 7॥
vairāgyadāyavīrāyavītarogabhayāya ca ।
vipatparampareśāyaviśvavandyāyatenamaḥ॥ 8॥
gṛdhnavāhāyagūḍhāyakūrmāṃgāyakurūpiṇe।
kutsitāyaguṇāḍhyāyagocarāyanamonamaḥ॥ 9॥
avidyāmūlanāśāyavidyā'vidyāsvarūpiṇe।
āyuṣyakāraṇāyā'paduddhartre ca namonamaḥ॥ 10॥
viṣṇubhaktāyavaśinevividhāgamavedine।
vidhistutyāyavandyāyavirūpākṣāyatenamaḥ॥ 11॥
variṣṭhāyagariṣṭhāyavajrāṃkuśadharāya ca ।
varadābhayahastāyavāmanāyanamonamaḥ॥ 12॥
jyeṣṭhāpatnīsametāyaśreṣṭhāyamitabhāṣiṇe।
kaṣṭaughanāśakaryāyapuṣṭidāyanamonamaḥ॥ 13॥
stutyāyastotragamyāyabhaktivaśyāyabhānave।
bhānuputrāyabhavyāyapāvanāyanamonamaḥ॥ 14॥
dhanurmaṇḍalasaṃsthāyadhanadāyadhanuṣmate।
tanuprakāśadehāyatāmasāyanamonamaḥ॥ 15॥
aśeṣajanavandyāyaviśeṣaphaladāyine।
vaśīkṛtajaneśāyapaśūnāmpatayenamaḥ॥ 16॥
khecarāyakhageśāyaghananīlāmbarāya ca ।
kāṭhinyamānasāyā'ryagaṇastutyāyatenamaḥ॥ 17॥
nīlacchatrāyanityāyanirguṇāyaguṇātmane।
nirāmayāyanindyāyavandanīyāyatenamaḥ॥ 18॥
dhīrāyadivyadehāyadīnārtiharaṇāya ca ।
dainyanāśakarāyā'ryajanagaṇyāyatenamaḥ॥ 19॥
krūrāyakrūraceṣṭāyakāmakrodhakarāya ca ।
114
kaḷatraputraśatrutvakāraṇāyanamonamaḥ॥ 20॥
paripoṣitabhaktāyaparabhītiharāya।
bhaktasaṃghamano'bhīṣṭaphaladāyanamonamaḥ॥ 21॥
itthaṃśanaiścarāyedaṃnāṃnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam।
pratyahaṃprajapanmartyodīrghamāyuravāpnuyāt॥
॥śanistotram॥
Om̃ śanaiścaraḥsvadhākārīchāyābhūḥsūryanandanaḥ।
mārtaṇḍajoyamaḥsauriḥpaṅgūścagrahanāyakaḥ॥ 1॥
brahmaṇyo'krūradharmajñonīlavarṇo'ñjanadyutiḥ।
dvādaśaitānināmānitrisandhyaṃyaḥpaṭhennaraḥ॥ 2॥
tasyapīḍāṃnacaivāhaṃkariṣyāminasaṃśayaḥ।
gocarejanmalagne ca vāpasvantardaśāsu ca ॥ 3॥
itiśanaiścarastotram।
Rahukavacam
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ॥
Om̃ asyaśrīrāhukavacastotramantrasyacandramāṛṣiḥ,
anuṣṭupchandaḥ, rāṃbījam, namaḥśaktiḥ,
svāhākīlakam, rāhukṛtapīḍānivāraṇārthe, dhanadhānya,
āyurārogyaādisamṛddhiprāptayarthe jape viniyogaḥ॥
praṇamāmisadārāhuṃśūrpākāraṃkirīṭinam।
saiṃhikeyaṃkarālāsyaṃlokānāmabhayapradam॥ 1॥
nīlāmbaraḥśiraḥpātulalāṭaṃlokavanditaḥ।
cakṣuṣīpātu me rāhuḥśrotretvardhaśarīravān॥ 2॥
nāsikāṃ me dhūmravarṇaḥśūlapāṇirmukhaṃ mama ।
jihvāṃ me siṃhikāsūnuḥkaṇṭhaṃ me kaṭhināṅghrikaḥ॥ 3॥
bhujaṅgeśobhujaupātunīlamālyāmbaraḥkarau।
pātuvakṣaḥsthalaṃmantrīpātukukṣiṃvidhuntudaḥ॥ 4॥
kaṭiṃ me vikaṭaḥpātuūrū me surapūjitaḥ।
svarbhānurjānunīpātujaṅghe me pātujāḍyahā॥ 5॥
gulphaugrahapatiḥpātupādau me bhīṣaṇākṛtiḥ।
sarvāṇyaṅgāni me pātunīlacandanabhūṣaṇaḥ॥ 6॥
115
rāhoridaṃkavacamṛddhidavastudaṃyo
bhaktyāpaṭhatyanudinaṃniyataḥśuciḥ san ।
prāpnotikīrtimatulāṃśriyamṛddhimāyu-
rārogyamātmavijayaṃ ca hi tatprasādāt॥ 7॥
॥itiśrīmahābhāratedhṛtarāṣṭrasañjayasaṃvāde
droṇaparvaṇirāhukavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
Rahosṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
śṛṇunāmānirāhoścasaiṃhikeyovidhuntudaḥ।
suraśatrustamaścaivaphaṇīgārgyāyaṇastathā॥ 1॥phaṇirgārgyāyanastathā
surāgurnīlajīmūtasaṅkāśaścacaturbhujaḥ।surārirnīla
khaḍgakheṭakadhārī ca varadāyakahastakaḥ॥ 2॥
śūlāyudhomeghavarṇaḥkṛṣṇadhvajapatākāvān।varṇopatākavān
dakṣiṇāśāmukharataḥtīkṣṇadaṃṣṭradharāya ca ॥ 3॥daṃṣṭrākarālakaḥ
śūrpākārāsanasthaścagomedābharaṇapriyaḥ।
māṣapriyaḥkaśyaparṣinandanobhujageśvaraḥ॥ 4॥kāśyapa
ulkāpātayitāśulīnidhipaḥkṛṣṇasarparāṭ।ulkāpātajaniḥśūlī
viṣajvalāvṛtāsyo'rdhaśarīrojādyasampradaḥ॥ 5॥śātravapradaḥ
ravīndubhīkaraśchāyāsvarūpīkaṭhināṅgakaḥ।
dviṣaccakracchedako'thakarālāsyobhayaṅkaraḥ॥ 6॥
krūrakarmātamorūpaḥśyāmātmānīlalohitaḥ।
kirīṭīnīlavasanaḥśanisāmantavartmagaḥ॥ 7॥
cāṇḍālavarṇo'thāśvyarkṣabhavomeṣabhavastathā।
śanivatphaladaḥśūro'pasavyagatireva ca ॥ 8॥
uparāgakarassūryahimāṃṣucchavihārakaḥ।
var uparāgakarassomasūryacchavivimardakaḥ
nīlapuṣpavihāraścagrahaśreṣṭho'ṣṭamagrahaḥ॥ 9॥
kabandhamātradehaścayātudhānakulodbhavaḥ।
govindavarapātraṃ ca devajātipraviṣṭakaḥ॥ 10॥
krūroghoraḥśanermitraṃśukramitramagocaraḥ।
mānegaṅgāsnānadātāsvagṛheprabalāḍhyakaḥ॥ 11॥
sadgṛhe'nyabaladhṛccaturthemātṛnāśakaḥ।
candrayuktetucaṇḍālajanmasūcakaevatu॥ 12॥
janmasiṃherājyadātāmahākāyastathaiva ca ।
116
janmakartāvidhuripumattakojñānadaścasaḥ॥ 13॥
janmakanyārājyadātājanmahānidaeva ca ।
navamepitṛhantā ca pañcameśokadāyakaḥ॥ 14॥
dyūnekaḷatrahantā ca saptamekalahapradaḥ।
ṣaṣṭhetuvittadātā ca caturthevairadāyakaḥ॥ 15॥
navamepāpadātā ca daśameśokadāyakaḥ।
ādauyaśaḥpradātā ca ante vairapradāyakaḥ॥ 16॥
kālātmāgocarācārodhanecāsyakakutpradaḥ।
pañcamedhiṣaṇāśṛṅgadaḥsvarbhānurbalītathā॥ 17॥
mahāsaukhyapradāyī ca candravairī ca śāśvataḥ।
suraśatruḥpāpagrahaḥśāmbhavaḥpūjyakastathā॥ 18॥
pāṭīrapūraṇaścāthapaiṭhīnasakulodbhavaḥ।
dīrghakṛṣṇotanurviṣṇunetrārirdevadānavau॥ 19॥
bhaktarakṣorāhumūrtiḥsarvābhīṣṭaphalapradaḥ।
etadrāhugrahasyoktaṃnāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam॥ 20॥
śraddhayāyojapennityaṃmucyatesarvasaṅkaṭāt।
sarvasampatkarastasyarāhuriṣṭapradāyakaḥ॥ 21॥
॥itirāhuaṣṭottaraśatanāmastotramsampūrṇam॥
॥rāhustotram॥
atharāhustotraprārambhaḥ।
Om̃ asyaśrīrāhustotramahāmantrasyavāmadevaṛṣiḥ।
anuṣṭupcchandaḥ।rāhurdevatā।
rāhuprasādasiddhyarthe jape viniyogaḥ।
kāśyapauvāca।
śṛṇvantumunayaḥsarverāhuprītikaraṃstavam।
sarvarogapraśamanaṃviṣabhītiharaṃ param ॥ 1॥
sarvasampatkaraṃcaivaguhyametadanuttamam।
ādareṇapravakṣyāmiśrūyatāmavadhānataḥ॥ 2॥
rāhuḥsūryaripuścaivaviṣajvālībhayānanaḥ।
sudhāṃśuvairiḥśyāmātmāviṣṇucakrāhitobalī॥ 3॥
bhujageśastīkṣṇadaṃṣṭraḥkrūrakarmāgrahādhipaḥ।
dvādaśaitānināmāninityaṃyoniyataḥpaṭhet॥ 4॥
japtvātupratimāṃraṃyāṃsīsajāṃmāṣasusthitām।
nīlairgandhākṣataiḥpuṣpaiḥbhaktyāsampūjyayatnataḥ॥ 5॥
vidhināvahnimādāyadūrvānnājyāhutīḥkramāt।
117
tanmantreṇaivajuhuyādyāvadaṣṭottaraṃśatam॥ 6॥
hutvaivaṃbhaktimānrāhuṃprārthayedgrahanāyakam।
sarvāpadvinivṛtyarthaṃprāñjaliḥpraṇatonaraḥ॥ 7||
rāhokarāḷavadanaravicandrabhayaṅkara।
tamorūpanamastubhyaṃprasādaṃ kuru sarvadā॥ 8॥
simhikāsutasūryāresiddhagandharvapūjita।
siṃhavāhanamastubhyaṃsarvānrogānnivāraya॥ 9॥
kṛpāṇaphalakāhastatriśūlinvaradāyaka।
garaḷātigarāḷāsyagadānmenāśayākhilān॥ 10॥
svarbhānosarpavadanasudhākaravimardana।
surāsuravarastutyasarvadātvaṃprasīda me ॥ 11॥
itisamprārthitorāhuḥduṣṭasthānagato'pivā।
suprītojāyatetasyasarvānrogānvināśayet॥ 12॥
viṣānnajāyatebhītiḥmahārogasyakākathā।
sarvānkāmānavāpnotinaṣṭaṃrājyamavāpnuyāt॥ 13॥
evaṃpaṭhedanudinaṃstavarājametaṃmartyaḥprasannahṛdayovijitendriyoyaḥ।
ārogyamāyuratulaṃlabhatesuputrānsarvegrahāviṣamagāḥsuratiprasannāḥ॥ 14॥
itirāhustotraṃsampūrṇam।
॥ketukavacam॥
Om̃ asyaśrīketukavacastotramahāmantrasyatryambakaṝṣiḥ।
anuṣṭupchandaḥ।keturdevatā।
kaṃbījaṃ।namaḥśaktiḥ।
keturitikīlakam।
ketukṛtapīḍānivāraṇārthe, sarvaroganivāraṇārthe,
sarvaśatruvināśanārthe, sarvakāryasiddhyarthe,
ketuprasādasiddhyarthe jape viniyogaḥ।
śrīgaṇeśāyanamaḥ।
ketuṃkarālavadanaṃcitravarṇaṃkirīṭinam।
praṇamāmisadāketuṃdhvajākāraṃgraheśvaram॥ 1॥
citravarṇaḥśiraḥpātubhālaṃdhūmrasamadyutiḥ।
pātunetrepiṅgalākṣaḥśrutī me raktalocanaḥ॥ 2॥
ghrāṇaṃpātusuvarṇābhaścibukaṃsiṃhikāsutaḥ।
pātukaṇṭhaṃ ca me ketuḥskandhaupātugrahādhipaḥ॥ 3॥
hastaupātusuraśreṣṭhaḥkukṣiṃpātumahāgrahaḥ।
118
siṃhāsanaḥkaṭiṃpātumadhyaṃpātumahāsuraḥ॥ 4॥
ūrūpātumahāśīrṣojānunīme'tikopanaḥ।
pātupādau ca me krūraḥsarvāṅgaṃnarapiṅgalaḥ॥ 5॥
yaidaṃkavacaṃdivyaṃsarvarogavināśanam।
sarvaśatruvināśaṃ ca dhāraṇādvijayībhavet॥ 6॥
॥itiśrībrahmāṇḍapurāṇeketukavacaṃsampūrṇam॥
Ketuaṣṭottaraśatanāmastotram॥
119
caturthemātṛnāśaścanavamepitṛnāśakaḥ।
antyevairapradaścaivasutānandanabandhakaḥ॥ 14॥
sarpākṣijāto'naṃgaścakarmarāśyudbhavastathā।
upāntekīrtidaścaivasaptamekalahapradaḥ॥ 15॥
aṣṭamevyādhikartā ca dhanebahusukhapradaḥ।
jananerogadaścordhvamūrdhajograhanāyakaḥ॥ 16॥
pāpadṛṣṭiḥkhecaraścaśāmbhavo'śeṣapūjitaḥ।
śāśvataścanaṭaścaivaśubhā'śubhaphalapradaḥ॥ 17॥
dhūmraścaivasudhāpāyīhyajitobhaktavatsalaḥ।
siṃhāsanaḥketumūrtīravīndudyutināśakaḥ॥ 18॥
amaraḥpīḍako'martyoviṣṇudṛṣṭo'sureśvaraḥ।
bhaktarakṣo'thavaicitryakapaṭasyandanastathā॥ 19॥
vicitraphaladāyī ca bhaktābhīṣṭaphalapradaḥ।
etatketugrahasyoktaṃnāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam॥ 20॥
yobhaktyedaṃjapetketurnāmnāmaṣṭottaraṃśatam।
satuketoḥprasādenasarvābhīṣṭaṃsamāpnuyāt॥ 21॥
॥itiketuaṣṭottaraśatanāmastotramsampūrṇam॥
॥ketustotram॥
athaketustotraprārambhaḥ।
Om̃ asyaśrīketustotramahāmantrasyavāmadevaṝṣiḥ।
anuṣṭupchandaḥ।keturdevatā।
ketuprasādasiddhyarthe jape viniyogaḥ।
gautamauvāca।
munīndrasūtatattvajñasarvaśāstraviśārada।
sarvarogaharaṃbrūhiketoḥstotramanuttamam॥ 1॥
sūtauvāca।
śṛṇugautamavakṣyāmistotrametadanuttamam।
guhyādguhyatamaṃketoḥbramaṇākīrtitaṃpurā॥ 2॥
ādyaḥkarāḷavadanodvitīyoraktalocanaḥ।
tṛtīyaḥpiṅgaḷākṣaścacaturthojñānadāyakaḥ॥ 3॥
pañcamaḥkapilākṣaścaṣaṣṭhaḥkālāgnisannibhaḥ।
saptamohimagarbhaśctūmravarṇoṣṭamastathā॥ 4॥
navamaḥkṛttakaṇṭhaścadaśamaḥnarapīṭhagaḥ।
ekādaśastuśrīkaṇṭhaḥdvādaśastugadāyudhaḥ॥ 5॥
dvādaśaitemahākrūrāḥsarvopadravakārakāḥ।
120
parvakālepīḍayantidivākaraniśākarau॥ 6॥
nāmadvādaśakaṃstotraṃketoretanmahātmanaḥ।
paṭhantiye'nvahaṃbhaktyātebhyaḥketuḥprasīdati॥ 7॥
kuḷukthadhānyevilikhetṣaṭkoṇaṃmaṇḍalaṃśubham।
padmamaṣṭadaḷaṃtatravilikheccavidhānataḥ॥ 8॥
nīlaṃghaṭaṃ ca saṃsthāpyadivākaraniśākarau।
ketuṃ ca tatranikṣipyapūjayitvāvidhānataḥ॥ 9॥
stotrametatpaṭhitvā ca dhyāyanketuṃvarapradam।
brāhmaṇaṃśrotriyaṃśāntaṃpūjayitvākuṭumbinam॥ 10॥
ketoḥ karāḷavaktrasyapratimāṃvastrasaṃyutām।
kumbhādibhiścasaṃyuktāṃcitrātārepradāpayet॥ 11॥
dānenānenasuprītaḥketuḥsyāttasyasaukhyadaḥ।
vatsaraṃprayatābhūtvāpūjayitvāvidhānataḥ॥ 12॥
mūlamaṣṭottaraśataṃ ye japantinarottamāḥ।
teṣāṃketuprasādenanakadācidbhayaṃbhavet॥ 13॥
itiketustotraṃsampūrṇam।
Adityaaya Somaaya Mangalaaya Budhaayacha Guru Shukra Shanaibhyascha Rahave Ketave Namah/
121